WELL TOLD TALES SHEILA K****4 ANNIES. SWAN SHEILA'S VISIT TO ACHXAFAULD, SHEILA BY ANNIE S. SWAN Author of ' GATES OF EDEN," " BRIAR AND PALM," " ST. VEDA'S," Etc. CINCINNATI: JENNINGS & PYE NEW YORK: EATON & MAINS TO HER GRACE THE DUCHESS-DOWAGER OF ATHOLE. LADY, I lay these pages at thy feet : Writ) as thou knoufst, among the silent, hills, By the swift-flowing stream, whose murmuring voice Bears in its tone the music of the past. And if the record of the young hearfs life, The heritage of joy, the cross of pain, By which on earth it is made meet for Heart n, Awake in thine a tender memory Of other days, when that bright radiant light, The love which is life's crown, illumined thine, It is enough : I lay it at thy feet. ANNIE S. SWAN. CONTENTS. CHIP. I. THE I^AIRD'S WOOING, . II. BROTHER AND SISTER, . III. I*A.DY AILSA'S OPINION, . IV. WELCOME HOME, V. THE KIRK OF AMULREE, VI. THE KETHER MILLSTONE, VII. BAIRN DAYS, VIII. AMONG THE FAULD FOLK, IX. THE SHADOW OF DEATH, X. ESTRANGED, XI. A WILY PLOTTER, XII. FACTOR AND LAIRD, XIII. FORESHADOWINGS, XIV. MALCOLM, . . XV. UNCLE GRAHAM, XVI. MOTHER AND SON, . XVII. CIIUMS, XVIII. HOME AGAIN, . . Til PAOI 9 19 28 37 46 55 63 72 84 93 103 113 122 130 139 148 157 166 ?iii CONTENTS. CHAP PA01 XIX. TUB LAST MEETING, . . . . .175 XX. AN UNWELCOME INTRUDER, . . . .184 xxi. 'FAREWELL TO LOCHABER,' . . . .192 xxii. SHEILA'S INHERITANCE, .... 202 XXIII. FLANS, ...... 210 XXIV. THE AWAKENING, . . . . ,218 XXV. HOME, ...... 225 XXVI. HER OWN FOLK, ..... 233 XXVII. HER RESOLVE, ..... 241 xxviii. COUSINS, ...... 249 XXIX. SCHEMING STILL, . . f . . . 258 XXX. LOVE'S TOUNG DREAM, .... 265 XXXI. IN BITTERNESS OF SOUL, .... 273 XXXIL ALASTAIR'S WOOING, ..... 281 XXXIIL THE LAST NIGHT OF THE YEAR, . . . 290 xxxiv. NEW TEAR'S MORN, . . . . . 299 XXXV. SIGNS OF EVIL, ..... 307 XXXVI. MT WIFE, ...... 315 XXXVII. A DARK NIGHT, ..... 323 XXXVIII. PEACE, . . . . . .331 XXYTY. IIACDONALD'S LAST WILL, .... 338 XL. 'THE CAMPBELLS ARE COMIN'.' . . . 345 XLI. A MAIDEN'S HEART, ..... 353 XLII. *A JUDEECIOUS FBICHT,' .... 361 XLIII. LOVE'S CROWN, ..... 871 SHEILA. CHAPTER L THE LAIRD'S WOOING. 'Might we but share one wild caress, Ere life's autumnal blossoms fall?' 0. W. HOLMS. IIEILA, are you ever a moment still ? You'll have every spring in mamma's poor old couch broken.' The reproof was very gently uttered, in a sweet, caressing voice, but the child to whom it was administered felt it to be a reproof, and, desisting from her boisterous gambolling with Tory, her little fox terrier, came close to her mother's side and looked up into her face. They were mother and child, though one would scarcely have imagined it. The mother's golden brown hair was confined under a close widow's cap, but the sweet, somewhat careworn face tinder it seemed only a girl's. Edith Murray had kept her youth well, though she had been a widow for nearly five years. Her white hand rested lovingly on the child's tumbled brown curls, and she smiled into the large, soft, hazel eyes, so like her own, which were uplifted to her face. Well, Sheila, what now? ' ' Can Anne take me, mamma, away up the river, Tory and me? Fm so tired staying in the house.* io SHEILA. 'Not to-day, darling. Mamma will need you by and by. But you and Tory may go out to the garden for a frolic, only don't let him chew Anne's linen bleaching on the grass.' 'Very well, mamma, thank you. Come, Tory, Tory; oh, you dear, funny little dog 1 ' She went through the wide open window on to the little lawn like an arrow, Tory tumbling and rolling on the top of her, chewing her sash ribbons and snapping at her toes. They were both babies, and the one enjoyed the fun as much as the other. Sheila Murray, the widow's one child, and therefore boundlessly precious, seemed to bear a charmed life. She was filled with frolic and fun, and was never a moment still from the time the big hazel eyes opened in the morning till the sleepy lids drooped over them at night. But though she had been in perils oft, and had been nearly drowned in the swift Tay more than once, her escapes neither sobered nor frightened her. She did not even know the meaning of fear. It was not often Edith Murray sat with idle hands, but after child and dog had disappeared through the high privet hedge into the back garden, she sat quite still, looking in the direction they had taken, but her thoughts had not followed them. 'It is for the child's sake,' she whispered to herself after a while. ' And what have I to do with the world, or the world with me ? ' It was as if she had been balanced between two opinions, hesitating between two diverging paths, and had suddenly found strength of mind to decide. Her face cleared of its anxious expression, and a kind of sunny brightness seemed to pervade her whole being. But she was feeling nervous, for, in spite of her outward self-control, her hands trembled when she took up the little frock she had been embroidering for her child. Though still young in years, Edith Murray was old in the experience of life. She was English by birth, and connected with a very old Lincolnshire family. But the branch to which she belonged had been very poor, and when she found herself early orphaned, she had to face the world in her search for daily -bread. She had rich and titled relations, but they knew THE LAIRD'S WOOING. \ \ not the poor, obscure girl who made an appeal for their aid. They advised her to try the usual medium through which teaching appointments are to be got, and washed their hands of her. That bitter sting remained long in Edith Chesney's gentle heart; but she was fortunate beyond others of her class in finding a home and friends among strangers. She left England to become governess in the family of a Scotch baronet, whose residence was in Perthshire, five miles from the ancient and picturesque town of Dunkeld. Sir Douglas Murray himself was a stiff, proud, unyielding man, whom not many loved; but his wife, Lady Ailsa, was one of the sweetest and best of women. Although an earl's daughter herself, she made the friendless orphan feel truly at home in Murrayshaugh, and among her four boy pupils Edith Chesney was very happy. She had not been long an inmate of the house, however, when Alastair Murray, Sir Douglas's brother, a lieutenant in the 93rd Highlanders, fell in love with the sweet, gentle, gracious girl who taught his brother's boys. Of course there was the usual opposition from the bridegroom's family. Not only did they object to the marriage from motives of pride, but also of prudence, for Alastair had not a farthing in the world but his lieutenant's pay. But when did young love ever count pounds, shillings, and pence ? They were married, and though barrack life had its drawbacks, and it was no easy task to lay out their meagre income judiciously, they were ridiculous enough to be perfectly happy and contented for a few brief months in Edinburgh Castle, until the gallant 93rd was ordered to the Crimea. Then husband and wife parted, not knowing they should meet no more on earth. When Edith was ill at Murrayshaugh, and a week-old baby in the cot, the news came home that Lieutenant Alastair Murray had fallen in the trenches before Sebastopol. The poor young widow and her baby-daughter were thus left entirely dependent on the Murrays. Sir Douglas did his duty, as he saw it, but it was done in a spirit which could not fail to wound a sensitive soul. He gave her one of his own cottages in Birnam, paid her servant's wages, and gave her fifty pounds a year. This, Lady 12 SHEILA. Ailsa, out of the loving-kindness of her heart, and unknown indeed to her husband, supplemented with many a kind and handsome gift. Sir Douglas regarded his sister-in-law as a burden upon him, and one which ought never to have been laid upon him. But though he gave her of his substance grudgingly, he frowned her down when she had meekly suggested trying to earn her own living, as she had done previous to her marriage. 'Remember, Mrs. Alastair, you are one of "us" now,' he had said, -with his haughty head high in the air, and the most unbending severity of look and tone. So poor Mrs. Alastair could only eat meekly of the bread of charity, and how bitter she found it to the taste no one but herself knew. But for her child's love, and her faith in God's care, she would have given way to despair. There were times, however, when looking forward she did despair. Year by year, as Sheila grew older, expenses were increasing. More cloth was required for the little frocks, and a few shillings more for boots and slippers and what was to become of the child's future? Mrs. Alastair was a great deal alone, and she brooded over these things perhaps more than she ought. An occasional dinner at Murrayshaugh was her only experience of social life, and though she never failed to impress Lady Ailsa's guests with her sweetness and grace, the idea that any one could be specially interested in her never presented itself to her mind. She believed that she had lived her life, but she had that day received a great surprise the greatest, indeed, which had ever ruffled the quiet current of her days. She took the letter from her pocket, and read it again for the twentieth time. It was very short, and very much to the point. The concluding sentences appealed to something in her heart she had fancied no power on earth could again awaken. 'You are the only woman I have ever seen who ever cost me a second thought. If you will marry me, I will do my utmost to make you happy. What jour answer may mean to me I can scarcely permit myself to think. Madam, I cannot wait for it. I will therefore call to-morrow afternoon to receive it from your own lips.' THE LAIRD'S WOOING. 13 Such were the words Edith Murray had read so often that day that they seemed engraven on her heart. Her eyes were fixed upon them when she heard the sharp click of the garden gate and a firm step on the gravelled walk. Then the bell rang, and almost before she could collect her wavering, trembling senses, the visitor was announced. 'Mr. Graham Macdonald.' Mrs. Alastair rose hurriedly to her feet, and, with crimson face, extended her hand in greeting. ' I hope I see you well, madam ? ' Macdonald said, with a rugged, old-fashioned courtesy ; but his deep, keen, flashing blue eye dwelt on the sweet face as if he sought to read her very soul. Tall, broad-shouldered, strong of limb and will, was this rugged Highland laird, who had done his wooing in such a rough and ready fashion without any of the preliminaries of courting. He had but seen her twice at Murrayshaugh, but the first time he took her in to dinner he knew that if she would have him he would make her his wife. Macdonald was not handsome, but he had a powerful and not ungraceful figure, a striking if rather stern-looking face, and an honest, flashing eye, which had never feared the face of man. He was a descendant of an old and honourable family, who had at one time held large estates in the far north. But the vicissitudes of war and the fickleness of fortune had wrested these from it It was only after the rebellion of '45 that Dalmore, in Glen- quaich, and Eindowie, in Strathbraan the present estates of the Macdonalds came into the possession of the family. Graham Macdonald was a proud man, and had the reputation of being hard of heart and greedy of gold. But the man had another side a fine, generous, loveable side which was now to come to the front. Until love for this woman had touched his being, he had had no experience of the sweeter influences of life. Love was not the less sincere, and even passionate, that it had come to him so late. He was now in his fifty- fifth year. Hasty of action, though somewhat slow of speech, he had risked his happiness on the very slight acquaintance he had with Mrs. Alastair, and now had come in person for 14 SHEILA. his answer. He did not sit down in her presence, though she begged him to do so. He saw her extreme nervousness indeed, the fluctuating colour on her face and the downcast, womanly manner might have given him hope but what did the grim Laird of Dalmore know of women and their ways ? Mrs. Alastair saw that she must speak, for the Laird had not a word to say for himself now he had come for his answer. But while she was trying to find words to open the conversa- tion, they were interrupted by Tory's sharp little bark and the sound of hurrying feet, and the next moment Sheila darted into the room. She was not a shy child, and she rushed at once to the Laird's side and thrust her hand into his pocket. * Sheila, Sheila! you naughty child,' said Mrs. Alastair reprovingly. ' Run away to Anne.' Macdonald stooped down and took the child in his strong arms, and instantly her little hands clasped his neck, and she bent upon him the pair of loveliest, most innocent baby eyes he had ever seen. * Any rock ? ' 1 No, but there's something to buy it with in the pockets you were at just now,' said the Laird, with a smile which Mrs. Alastair thought made his face almost handsome. * I have just been asking your mamma to come and live at my house, Sheila, you and she, and you would have a pony to ride on, and all sorts of things.' ' We'll go to-morrow,' said Sheila, quite excitedly ; ' is it far away ? ' ' Not very ; but see what mamma says. I think she is not quite sure about it,' said Macdonald, finding a fine easy way out of his dilemma. Poor, innocent Sheila! she was quite unconscious what a momentous question she was called upon to decide. 'Oh, mamma always does what I want,' said Sheila, with delightful confidence. ' How soon can we go ? To-morrow ? Will you take us after breakfast? Anne gives me my porridge at eight, mamma has her coffee at nine. We'll go at ten 1 ' ' Oh, Sheila, Sheila I ' Mrs. Alastair rose with crimson face, and rang the bell. THE LAIRD'S WOOING. 15 * Take Sheila away, Anne,' she said, when the girl camp. ' Keep her with you till I ring.' So Sheila was ignominiously dismissed, but she had settled the question all the same, and both the Laird and Mrs. Alastair knew it. Macdonald sat down beside her, and took her soft hand in his. 'You will never regret it, madam,' he said, in his some- what formal way, ' nor shall Sheila. I owe her a great deal for helping me out of this dilemma.' So they laughed, and shook hands xipon it, and were very happy in a kind of sober fashion, as befitted a pair whose first youth was past. * Mr. Macdonald,' said Mrs. Alastair, after a little, ' do you think your sister will be quite pleased at this?' * She may or she may not. Ellen is rather queer,' said the Laird briefly. ' It has suited her to dwell with me since the minister of Meiklemore died, but there was no promise given that Dalmore should be a permanent home. She and the boy shall never want; and even if I do nothing for them, her own portion would be sufficient for his rearing. She talks whiles of making him a minister, but truly I think the lad too manly ever to put on gown and bands.' ' Does she know you are here to-day ? ' 'No; my business is my own business, and she'll get to know in good time,' said Macdonald grimly. ' You need not be surprised if she pays you a visit soon. That would be the right thing, wouldn't it?' A slight shadow crossed Edith Murray's fair face. 'I am afraid of Mrs. Macleod. She was very distant and haughty, I thought, the last time I met her at Murrayshaugh,' she said timidly. ' You need not be. Ellen is an ill woman to bide with, I'll admit, but you will not require to bide with her. She shall have a house of her own before you come to Dalmore.' 'I fear she will not bear me any goodwill for her own and Her boy's sake,' said Edith Murray, with a sigh. 'I wish I knew whether I am doing right ? ' ' If you are doing that which your heart tells you, madam, 1 6 SHEILA. it is right. And why should 7 not be allowed to choose my wife as Ellen herself chose her husband, and a fine noise there was about that. The minister of Meiklemore was not con- sidered a fit mate for a Macdonald of Dalmore.' ' So I have heard them say ; but I should not like to bring dispeace into Dalmore,' said Edith Murray, still anxiously, though Macdonald's hearty manner somewhat reassured her. f You have made me a happy man this day,' he said, when he rose to go ; and certainly he looked it. 4 1 hope .1 shall always be able to make you happy,' Edith answered ; for her heart warmed to him, he was so honest, and straightforward, and true. ' You will be kind to Sheila?' she interposed, as they parted ; though she had no real misgivings about it. And what could Macdonald say but that he would love the child for her dear sake? As he rode away from the gate of the cottage, a carriage and pair swept over the bridge from Dunkeld. Its occupants were a lady and gentleman, Sir Douglas Murray and his fair wife Mrs. Aiastair's aristocratic kindred. They looked at each other in amazement at sight of Macdonald. ' Can he have been seeing Edith ? ' Lady Ailsa asked in wonder. 'It looks like it; but you'll hear about it presently/ Sir Douglas answered, in his short way. ' Well, we've ten minutes to make a call, so don't get into an endless gossip.' ' Oh, Douglas, you are hard upon me,' laughed his wife, as she sprang lightly from the carriage at her sister-in-law's gate. Edith Murray saw them come, and wondered in what words she would break to them the event of the day. Gentle though she was by nature, she could not help a slight thrill of pride at the thought that she was the promised wife of a man whose great possessions far exceeded the heritage of the proud Murrays of Murray shaugh. 'You have had a caller, Mrs. Alastair,' said Sir Douglas, with that slight sarcasm of manner which made him feared of many ; ' it is not often Dalmore condescends to make polite calls.' THE LAIRD'S WOOING. 1 7 Mrs. Alastair sat down suddenly, for she was trembling in every limb. The colour came and went fitfully across her sweet face, as she lifted her eyes with firmness to the face of her husband's brother. He was the head of the family, and it was her duty to acquaint him with the object of Dalmore's visit. ' Mr. Macdonald came to see me to-day, Sir Douglas, on a special errand,' she said quietly and with dignity, though her cheeks and hands were hotly flushed. ' He has done me the honour to ask me to be his wife.' ' Bless my heart and soul ! ' Sir Douglas forgot his starched dignity for a moment, and stared in the most profound amazement. ' His wife, Lady of Dalmore and Findowie, Mrs. Alastair ? Impossible 1 ' * It is true, and I have accepted him,' said Mrs. Alastair, with a sad smile ; then suddenly she turned to Lady Murray with a quick, sobbing breath. ' Oh, Ailsa, if I have done wrong, forgive me I It is so hard to know what to do ! And my posi- tion here oh, I do not wish to seem ungrateful, but I have felt it hard. It will be a home for me and Sheila, and we both need it. We are not afraid to trust ourselves with Macdonald of Dalmore.' 1 My poor, dear Edith 1 I am so glad. Don't cry, my darling, nor tremble so. You have done perfectly right ; and oh, I hope you will be happy, dear, and find the happiness you hope for. It will be a great change for you, Edith ; and we will all need to bow before the Lady of Dalmore, will we not, Douglas?' 4 Lady of Dalmore,' repeated Sir Douglas, as if the words had a charm for him. ' Upon my word, Mrs. Alastair, you have done splendidly. Of -course you have done right. No woman in her senses would refuse such a position, and I congratulate you with all my heart.' Sir Douglas was perfectly sincere in what he said, and he looked at his sister-in-law with a new interest and a considerable increase of respect. The penniless widow of his brother and the lady-elect of Dalmore were two different beings. ' We must go, Ailsa, if you wish to get this train,' said Sir Douglas presently ; and with ^enewed con- gratulations they left her. 1 8 SHEILA. ' What will Ellen Macleod say, Douglas ? ' asked Lady Ailsa, as they stepped into the carriage. ' Show her black Macdonald blood,' said Sir Douglas briefly. 4 Mrs. Alastair is quite a young woman, and will bring an heir to Dalmore, so Fergus Macleod will be put out.' Lady Ailsa sighed ; she seemed to see trouble ahead. ' Fergus Macleod will have his mother's portion, Douglas,' she said. * He does not need Dalmore.' ' The mother's portion cannot be much. I don't think there is money among the Macdonalds, and if Ellen Macleod offends Dalmore just now, she and her boy may find themselves badly enough off.' * She will be certain to do that,' said Lady Ailsa, rather sadly. ' She was almost rude to Mrs. Alastair the last time they all dined at Murrayshaugh. I should think Ellen Macleod could make a great deal of unhappiness if she chose.' 'Well, well, let them fight their own battles,' said Sir Douglas, dismissing the subject 'If Mrs. Alastair becomes Lady of Dalmore and Findowie, she can afford to snap her fingers at Ellen Macleod.' CHAPTER IL BROTHER AND SISTER. haughty heart, hard girt about with the grim panoply of Belt* ALMORE had a ten miles' ride before him, but ha was in no hurry to reach home. The reins lay loosely on the mare's glossy neck, and she took her own time ascending the hill from Birnam. It was a warm, sultry summer night ; a haze of heat hung low in the valleys, and made mysterious mist-wreaths along the mountain- sides. Here and there the silver crest of a birch tree would peep out weirdly from the hillside, or the tall head of some giant beech or oak would stand out strangely from the sea of mist in the low grounds, but the Laird had no attention for these things. Any one meeting him could have told that he was deeply absorbed in thought, but what these thoughts were it would have been difficult to determine from the expression on his face. It was a strange, striking face; rugged, powerful, suggestive of extraordinary strength of mind and will, but giving but little indication, if any, of the finer feelings which beautify human character. His heavy brows were knit, his mouth set in a grim, stern curve; but in his downcaft eyes there shone a curious light, for Graham Macdonald was think- ing of the woman he loved. He had met her years ago at Murrayshaugh, where she was governess to the children of Sir u 20 SHEILA. Douglas, and had been drawn to her then, though she was but a girl, and he a man of middle age. But Alastair Murray was before him, and if Dalmore had ever dreamed any sweet dreams of Edith Chesney, her marriage with the younger Murray dispelled it. So he returned to his lonely dwelling on the slope of bleak Crom Creagh, and took up again the routine of his life, but somehow it seemed to possess less of interest or pleasure for him. A few months after Edith Chesney 's marriage, the minister of Meiklemore, the husband of Mac- donald's only sister, Ellen died suddenly, and left her with one little boy of two years. It seemed the most natural thing in the world that Ellen Macdonald should return to Dalmore, and there she had dwelt in peace and security for three years. What castles she may have built for her own boy we shall learn hereafter. She had not the remotest idea that Lady Murray's governess could even have possessed the slightest interest for her brother. He was not a marrying man, nor one of those who lavished attentions on ladies. He had rather the reputation of being a bore and a misanthrope ; therefore Ellen Macleod apprehended no evil. As for imagining that Mrs. Alastair, the Murrays* poor relation, could be a lion in her path, she would have drawn herself up with indignation at the mere suggestion of such a thing. Ellen Macdonald was a proud, haughty, hard-natured woman. How she had stooped to marry the poor minister of Meiklemore, though he was a Macleod of Pitleoch, was a mystery not solvable by any who knew her. The Laird rode slowly, thinking of the woman he had left. Away in the far distance he could see the mist-crowned cap of Crom Creagh, in whose shadow stood the home she would one day brighten with her presence. It needed some- thing to brighten it ; it was a house, but no home, and never had been. If Macdonald was morose and unloveable, he had had no early training or sweeter influences to foster the better part of his nature. Grim Highland pride, fierce High- hind temper, had been allowed to run rampant among the Macdonalds through every generation. A thought of Ellen came to him as he caught sight of Crom Creagh, and moment- arily he set himself straight in the saddle, and tightened BROTHER AND SISTER. 21 his hand on the rein. The mare, sensitive to the slightest touch, set off at a brisk canter, and in fifteen minutes passed by the inn at Amulree. The mist was clearing away, and a glorious sunset appearing beyond the solemn shadows of Glen- quaich. A red light touched the waters of the loch into a sheet of living fire, and golden shafts lay athwart the surround- ing hills. High on a bit of tableland, half way up Crom Creagh, stood Dalmore, sheltered somewhat by a pine wood on either side, but standing out in front a grey, weather-beaten pile, its many turreted windows reflecting the glory of the sun- set sky. It was a bleak, exposed situation for a dwelling, more suggestive of a shooting lodge than the mansion pertaining to a great estate, but it was in keeping with the characteristics of the grim race whose heritage it was. They were not beloved in Glenquaich and Strathbraan, and Graham Macdonald was a hard landlord, exacting his dues to the uttermost farthing; a just man, but not generous, that was all that could be said of him. The front windows of Dalmore commanded a fine view : the little hamlet of Amulree, with its picturesque church and winding streams ; the beautiful valley of Glenquaich, with Loch Fraochie mirrored like a gem in its bosom ; and all around, chain upon chain of heather-clad hills sat in majestic and solemn beauty. They knew no change, whatever strife might fret the minds of men. The carriage-way to the mansion of Dalmore branched off the public road, crossed the Girron Burn by a rather unsteady- looking wooden bridge, propped up by divot and peat, led through the marshy low ground at the base of Crom Creagh, and finally wound up the steep slope of the hill to the house. A few straggling birches and firs grew on either side, but there was no attempt at ornamentation or effect. It was a bleak, bare, unpromising approach. And yet the place had its own wild beauty : the purple glow of heather bells, the mystery of light and shadows never seen save on Highland hills, and a perfect freedom and solitude, which seemed to bring it near to heaven. The Macdonalds loved their bleak heritage with a deep-rooted, if undemonstrative love, and they would not have exchanged it for any lowland castle or palace. t* SHEILA. Graham Macdonald rode slowly up the carriage-way. Once more the mare was allowed to take her own sweet will. She even stopped to take a mouthful of herbage from the bank without being restrained by her master's impatient hand. The house was built on a broad tableland directly under the steep ascent which led to the summit of the mountain. It was a commodious building of solid masonry, with long narrow win- dows, and a low wide doorway opening out on a sweep of gravel taken from the bed of the mountain streams. The stables and other offices were on the left, and to the right the garden, which, considering its height and exposure, seemed wonderfully productive. The harvest more than sufficed for the need of the simple household at Dalmore. The Laird dismounted at the stable door, and as he did so, a little lad dressed in the Highland garb, and becoming it well, came bounding with his hoop, and followed by a collie dog, from the front of the house. * May I get on Mora, Uncle Graham ? ' he asked, in his clear, childish tones. 'I have been watching for you. If I had seen you, I would have come to meet you on the road.' 'Too late, my boy,' said the Laird, gently for him, and his eye softened as it dwelt on the boy's sweet, open face. ' Never mind, Fergus ; to-morrow you shall have a ride on Mora. Is your mother in the house ? ' ' Yes, Uncle Graham. She is in the drawing-room, I think. I saw her at the window just now when I was playing. May I go with Lachlan Macrae to get Mora shod, and ride her home?' ' Yes, yes ; off you go. See that Colin doesn't chase the sheep. He'll need to be shot, Fergus, if he doesn't stop these tricks of his. I have had two complaints from the Fauld about him.' 'He is a bad dog, Uncle Graham, and I try to teach him. I'll whip him with your whip if he looks at a sheep to-day,' said Fergus sorrowfully, but firmly, as his uncle turned away. Dalmore entered the house by the kitchen door, and then through a long stone passage to the front halL Entering the gun-room, he took off his riding boots, and, washing his hands, proceeded as he was up to the drawing-room. His sister was BROTHER AND SISTER. 23 there alone, and he had occasion for a private word with her. The interior of Dalmore was much more imposing and com- fortable than its outward aspect promised. The hall itself was not the least handsome and striking feature of the house. It was panelled in oak from basement to ceiling, and the latter was a specimen of the fine carved work of a past age. It had a fire-place which, in these days of crazes for the antique, would be accounted of priceless value. Deer and sheep skins lay here and there on the polished floor, and the walls were adorned with magnificent deer's horns, stag's head, and other trophies of the chase. A broad, shallow flight of steps led up to a porticoed doorway, which opened upon the staircase, also of rich dark polished oak, and uncarpeted. The effect, if somewhat gloomy and bare, had an attraction of its own. The drawing-room was on the first floor a -curious octagon-shaped room, built, indeed, in the tower of Dalmore. It was plainly furnished, and there was no attempt at decoration, and certainly none of those lighter touches of beauty, which flowers and dainty bits of colour can give to a gloomy room. It was 'occupied by a lady attired in a black gown of a hard material, and a huge black cap utterly out of keeping with the still youthful appearance it disfigured. Her long, white, character- istic hands were busy kitting a tartan sock for her boy ; and though she slightly turned her head at the opening of the door, she had no smile of greeting for her brother. A smile was, indeed, seldom seen on the face of Ellen Macleod. She was a handsome, striking-looking woman, with a grace and dignity of bearing which proclaimed her descent ; but there was nothing winning or womanly about her. One might almost wonder how she had been persuaded to become a wife. She was a woman who looked always on the gloomy side of life. Young creatures shrank from her ; sometimes, God help him 1 her boy's warm heart was chilled by her coldness. She regarded any demonstration of affection as a pitiable weakness. She looked after the moral and physical well-being of her child in an exemplary manner, but withheld from him that motherly tender- ness which is the children's heritage. A woman this with few 24 SHEILA. womanly attributes or impulses, and whose pride knew no limit. Of these two grim beings who faced each other in that room, the man was the preferable of the two. 1 You have been riding ? ' she said briefly, and without lifting her eyes from her work. She was indeed surprised to see her brother in the drawing-room. When he was indoors, his hours were chiefly spent in the gun-room or in the library, which was filled with books he never read. ' Yes ; I have been to Birnam and back since luncheon,' he answered ; and, approaching the window where she sat, he stood directly opposite to her. She slightly elevated her eye- brows, but continued her work. 1 Will you give me your attention for a few minutes, Ellen, if you please ? ' * Certainly, Macdonald,' she answered, and, folding up her work methodically, laid it on the small inlaid table at her side, and lifted her calm eyes to his face. They were beautiful eyes large, dark, and piercing but they lacked that luminous light which a tender woman's heart can give to less expressive orbs. Graham Macdonald was no coward, but he felt a trifle disconcerted under that calm, steady gaze. He knew perfectly well that she had not the remotest idea of the nature of the communication he was about to make, and it was impossible to expect that it would not give her a shock of an unpleasant kind. * I have something very particular to talk to you about, Ellen,' he began. ' It concerns myself directly, and more indirectly you and your boy.' Indeed I ' Ellen Macleod started slightly. She had felt herself very secure in Dalmore, and, in point of fact, regarded herself as the mother of its future laird. 4 1 trust, Macdonald, that you have no fault to find with me or with Fergus ? ' she said quietly. ' I have endeavoured to do my duty in the house, and the child is as good as one of his years can be expected.' ' It is nothing of that kind, Ellen. How can I have any fault to find with you? And I love the boy, as you know,' said Macdonald hastily. 'I only ask you to look back for a BROTHER AND SISTER. 25 little. You will remember, when Macleod died, you came here of your own free will, without asking, and there was no promise given on either side.' 'What are you talking about, Macdonald?' asked Ellen Macleod, betrayed into more hastiness of speech than usual. ' What do you mean ? ' 'What I say. I am only reminding you, that when you came back to Dalmore three years ago, there was no promise given that it should be to you or the boy a permanent home.' ' Then you wish me to leave my father's house ? ' said Ellen Macleod, with quivering lip. 'Fergus and I have been too long a burden on you, perhaps; but we were unconscious offenders.' ' Don't be a fool, Ellen,' said Macdonald hastily. * It is im- possible you can misunderstand me. You have been no burden on me, nor have you given offence in any way, but I am going to marry, and it is impossible there can be two mistresses in Dalmore.' * Marry I * The word fell short, sharp almost like a gasp from Ellen Macleod's lips. In all her planning and dreaming, such a contingency as this had never presented itself to her mind. It was a moment before she recovered herself, for she had received a shock of no ordinary kind. ' Excuse me, Macdonald, if I am lax in offering my congratu- lations,' she said at length, with a slight, chill smile. 'The magnitude of my surprise is my excuse. Pray, who is the lady to whom you have offered your hand and heart ? ' Graham Macdonald did not like her tone, and his colour rose. There was not much love between the two, but the blame was wholly hers. She had done nothing all her life to conciliate or win her brother's heart. Nay, she had taught him a mistrust and dislike of women which had soured him in his young man- hood, and made him a morose and melancholy man. 'Spare me your sneers, Ellen, though they are not un- expected,' he said quickly. 'I do not admit your right to question me about my affairs. The fact that I am to marry might be sufficient. The lady who has done me the unspeakable honour to accept me in all my unwbrthiness is Edith Murray, 3 26 SHEILA. whom you may perhaps remember as governess at Mnrrays- haugh.' Ellen Macleod started as if she had been stung. Hot, bitter words rushed to her lips, but she restrained them, and even kept that cold smile steadily in her face. 'Lady Ailsa's English governess has indeed feathered her nest in Scotland/ she said slowly. 'Not content with her position as widow of a Murray of Murrayshaugh, she has played and won Dalmore. She must be a clever woman, in spite of her baby face and innocent ways.' Ellen Macleod was very angry. Her passion was at fever heat, or she would not so far have forgotten herself. As her anger rose, however, her brother's cooled, and he looked at her with a touch of compassion. 'My news has angered you, Ellen, and I forgive what you say about my future wife ; only, I beg of you, whatever you may think, in future to spare me the expression of your opinion. I suppose I have come to years of discretion, and may be permitted to please myself in this matter. I have told you in good time, for only this day did I receive my answer. You cannot accuse me of keeping you long in the dark /tgard- ing my plans.' ' I thank you for that courtesy, Macdonald,' saiu Ellen Macleod briefly. 'Unless the marriage is to taxe place immediately, I shall have time to make my plans. As you say, there cannot be two mistresses in Dalmore.' ' There need be no haste, Ellen,' said Macdonwid. ' Do nol think I shall lose all interest in you and the boy. You will, al least, remain until the new mistress comes home t ' ' I think not, Macdonald ; it would scarcely be pleasant for her or for me,' was the cold response. 'The marriage will not take place immediately,' said Mac- donald, after a pause. ' I hope, before the time, that you and she may have better acquaintance of each other. You will accompany me at an early day, Ellen, to Birnam, will you not?' Ellen Macleod's colour rose, and her eyes flashed ominously. ' Although I have enjoyed the shelter of your roof since my BROTHER AND SISTER. 27 husband's death, Macdonald, I am not bound to humour your whims, or humiliate myself to please you,' she said, with bitter scorn. * This woman you have chosen is not a fit wife for you, and / must decline to countenance the affair, or to receive her. 9 So saying, she gathered her heavy skirts in her hand, and swept out of the room. CHAPTER HI. LADY AILSA'S OPINION. 'Oh, srreet is sympathy; and woman's Heart Should be its fittest home.' HAVE just come over, Edith, my dear, to have a long chat with you about everything,' said Lady Ailsa Murray to her sister-in-law. ' Douglas is at Perth to-day, and I shall wait with you until his train is due. How are you? Sheila is not with me, my love, because I knew that if I brought her, you would have eyes and ears for nobody else.' 'I have missed her very much, Ailsa,' said Mrs. Alastair. *You, with your merry band, cannot understand the feelings of a mother who has only one ewe-lamb.' * Oh, but I do ! If you saw Sheila, Edith, among those six wild boys 1 She is like a little angeL In spite of my merry band, I envy you your one eve-lamb, because she is a girlie. What if we keep her? You will not need her badly at Dalmore?' * Perhaps more than here, Ailsa,' said Mrs. Alastair, with a sigh. 4 Why that long face, child ? You are not regretting having given your promise to Dalmore?' * O no I ' The delicate colour rose swiftly to the young LADY AILS A' S OPINION. 29 widow's pale face. 'If you only knew, if I could only tell you, how kind and good he is, Ailsa. I feel that I can never repay him for it all.' ' I should not have thought Dalmore would make such . a lover, Edith,' said Lady Ailsa, with a laugh. * I have always been rather afraid of him.' 'You do not know him,' said Mrs. Alastair, and turned her head a little away. ' I suppose Ellen Macleod has never come ? ' ' No ; she will not receive me, Ailsa.' 'Abominable of her! but nobody could expect anything else from her. It passes my comprehension how any man ever had the courage to make her his wife. I daresay she wore poor Edgar Macleod out,' said Lady Ailsa calmly. ' She will leave Dalmore, I suppose ? * 'O yes. There is a little lodge at Amulree Shonnen, I think, is the name which has been a kind of home for the ladies of the family. It belongs to her, so she and her boy are to take up their abode in it.' ' Amulree I ' exclaimed Lady Ailsa, shaking her head. ' Too near, my dear, far too near. I should like the breadth of the sea between you and Ellen Macleod.' ' You must not be too hard on her, Ailsa. Her hopes are all quenched. This must have been a blow to her ; and yet, and yet, if she were a true sister, she would not grudge her brother his happiness.' 'It is for the boy, I suppose,' said Lady Ailsa musingly. 'There is not much chance now of his inheriting Dalmore and Findowie. He is a fine little fellow. Have you ever seen him ? ' ' No ; but Macdonald speaks a great deal of him. He has a warm place in his uncle's heart.' '60 Ellen Macleod has put up her Highland temper and her Highland pride,' said Lady Ailsa. 'Never mind her, my dear; the only thing you can do is to ignore her.' I wrote to her, Ailsa, but she returned me my letter un- opened,' said Mrs. Alastair, with flushing face. 'Insulting woman! and in spite of all that, she deigns to remain at Dalmore !' 30 SHEILA. ' I did not tell Macdonald of it, Ailsa, as I am afraid he ia so sensitive where I am concerned that he would have sent her away.' ' Well, well, don't let us speak about her any more. When is the marriage likely to take place ? ' 'The date is fixed,' returned Mrs. Alastair shyly; 'the twenty-first of September.' ' And this is the ninth of August, child. There is no time to prepare. Of course you know the wedding will take place at Murrayshaugh ? ' ' We talked of being married in Edinburgh, Ailsa. This is such a prying, gossiping place.' ' Let them pry and gossip,' laughed Lady Ailsa. ' It can be as quiet as you like, but it shall be at Murrayshaugh and nowhere else. You can tell Macdonald that, with my kind compliments. Since you are going to cast off the Murrays, it must be done gracefully; and Ellen Macleod shall see that she stands alone in her senseless disapproval of the wisest step her brother ever took in his life.' ' Cast off the Murrays ! ' repeated Mrs. Alastair, and her tears rose. ' If I ever forget what you have been to me, Ailsa, since the first day I entered Murrayshaugh, a nameless dependent, may I suffer for it I ' ' Hush, my darling ! we have made you suffer too. My heart has been sore against my husband often on your account. Many times has he made the wound I could never heal. It is an unspeakable source of gratitude to me that at last you will be able to hold your own against us with all our pride. This marriage is a perfect joy to me, Edith, and all the Ellen Macleods in the world won't damp it.' Both were agitated, and there were traces of it in their looks and manner, when the servant announced Mr. Macdonald. Lady Ailsa sprang up, brushed away her tears, and was ready to meet the Laird with a smile. As he entered the room she could not but be struck by his noble bearing, and note the exquisite softening which a woman's sweet influence had given to his hard face. She saw the light in his eyes as they dwelt on Edith's face, and her heart was content, for she LADY AILS A' S OPINION. 31 knew that it was the love of a life her gentle sister- in-law hail won a love which would shield and cherish her from the blasts of life. Love had indeed wrought a marvellous change in Macdonalr 1 af Duhnore. 'What little bird whispered to you that Edith and I were talking about you?' laughed Lady Ailsa in her happy way. ' I do not suppose that you will care for anything so conven- tional as congratulations. Nevertheless, I do congratulate you, and I have known Edith much longer than you. You have won a prize, sir, which I fear we Hurrays have not sufficiently appreciated.' She spoke lightly, but with an undercurrent of earnestness which Graham Macdonald deeply felt. * I thank you, Lady Ailsa. I pray I may be worthy of it,' he said, with a courtesy and grace which became him well. 'I have no fear for your happiness. Good-bye, Edith, darling. She will tell you what we have been talking about. No, I will not stay ; ' and almost before they could detain her, the warm-hearted lady of Murray si laugh had flitted out of the room. 'Is Farquhar in your kitchen, Anne?' she asked Mrs. Alastair's maid, as she met her in the stair. ' No, my lady ; he has gone over to the hotel to put up the horses.' ' Ah, just run over and tell him to bring back the carriage, as I am going farther or I shall wait in the dining-room till he comes,' said Lady Ailsa, who had conceived a sudden plan. She was impulsive by nature, but the promptings of her heart were always in the right direction. ' Have we time, Farquhar, to drive to Dalmore and be back in time for Sir Douglas's train?' ' Dalmore, my lady ? ' asked the servant in surprise. ' Dalmore, above Amulree you know it ? ' ' O yes, my lady, I know it ; it is ten miles from here. No, there is not time ; it will take us three hours at least.' 'Ah, then, Lachlan can walk back to Murrayshaugh, and bring a dogcart for Sir Douglas ; Anne will tell him. Drive me up to Dalmore.' 32 SHEILA. There was nothing for Farquhar but to obey, though he felt himself aggrieved by this sudden and unexpected order. It was a long, toilsome road to Dalmore, and a cold, wet drizzle was beginning to blow in the easterly wind. Mr. Farquhar's imperturbable countenance wore a shade of anxious gloom as he turned his horses' heads up the hilly ascent. Lady Ailsa contemplated an errand of mercy. She wished to reason with, and, if possible, to conciliate Ellen Macleod, whom she had known since her girlhood, though she had not seen much of her for some years. But she knew the nature of Mrs. Alastair, and that the thought that Ellen Macleod regarded her with aversion and anger would eat the happiness out of her heart. Farquhar was in no very good mood when he got his horses up the steep carriage-way to Dalmore. He was an old and privileged servant, and sometimes spoke his mind with curious candour. 'Just look at the poor brutes, my lady,' he said, pointing to their foam-flaked flanks. 'That road's enough to kill them. How folks can live in a wilderness like this, and expect other people's horseflesh to pull up their mountains, / don't know.' ' You make idols of the horses, Farquhar,' said Lady Ailsa good-naturedly. ' Take them into the stables and feed them well. I shall stay tea with Mrs. Macleod while I am here.' Ellen Macleod had seen the carriage mounting the hill, and recognised the grey horses, but scarcely expected to see Lady Ailsa alone. She had made up her mind that 'that woman,' as she termed Mrs. Alastair, had come to assert her right to be received at Dalmore. Dear me ! how uncharitable one woman can be to another when jealousy and anger are allowed to gain the mastery. Lady Ailsa perfectly divined her thoughts, and smiled as she shook hands with her. 'No, I have not brought poor Mrs. Alastair to take you by storm, Ellen,' she said, with that sweet daring which character- ized her at times. ' I am not such an arch-plotter. Will you give me a cup of tea, and let me rest a little with you while LAD Y AILS A 'S OPINION. 3 3 Farquhar attends to his precious horses? He is much more con- cerned about their well-being than his mistress's convenience.' It was impossible not to feel the charm of that bright presence, and Ellen Macleod's grim face relaxed. *I am very glad to see you, Lady Ailsa. Few women -folk visit me here,' she said graciously, as she laid her hand on the bell-rope. * Your own fault, Ellen Macleod. People won't visit without invitations,' said Lady Ailsa candidly. ' Why do you mew yourself up in this dull place ; and oh, why do you wear that hideous thing on your head? It quite disfigures you. Have you ever noticed what a dainty thing Mrs. Alastair wears' Lady Ailsa stopped abruptly. She had made a mistake, as was evidenced by the slow, bitter smile which curled Ellen Macleod's lip. 1 1 have not a like desire with Mrs. Alastair to make myself attractive in the eyes of men,' she said quietly. 4 What horrid things you say, Ellen Macleod ! I declare you are not one bit better than you used to be as a girl. Was there no grace in the manse of Meiklemore ? ' Ellen Macleod held her tongue, and stirred up the newly- lighted fire to a brighter blaze. ' Do sit down, Ellen, and let us talk,' said Lady Ailsa, feeling that she was making very little headway. ' I am an old friend ; you can trust me, and I will be true. I have come to-day to plead Mrs. Alastair's cause.' Ellen Macleod sat down ; a red spot burned on her cheek, and her lips compressed themselves together. 'I would rather not speak of Mrs. Alastair, Ailsa, if you please.' ' But, Ellen, you must speak of her. If you go on brooding over this thing it will eat your heart out. Let us turn it inside out, and see the good as well as the ill in it. Confess, now, that it has made a wonderful improvement in your brother.' ' I have not noticed it. He has been little at home since this transpired. There are no fools like old ones, Lady Ailsa, and a middle-aged lover is generally a sorry spectacle. I am sorry 3 34 SHEILA. to see Macdonald making himself a laughing-stock,' was the sour reply. ' How hard you are upon him,' said Lady Ailsa gently. 4 Love makes us all a little foolish. I saw Macdonald to-day at Mrs. Alastair's, and I never admired him before, Ellen. In fact, I have been rather sorry for Edith ; you Macdonalds are rather a fearsome race, you know.' ' Not fearsome enough to frighten Aer,' said Ellen Macleod, with grim irony ; which Lady Ailsa passed over, so eager was she to make peace in Dalmore. She leaned forward in her chair, with her fair white hands clasped on her knees, and fixed her soft blue eyes earnestly on the dark, forbidding face opposite. ' Ellen, all you can do now will not put Macdonald past his purpose. Would it not be better to accept the inevitable gracefully, and do what you can to further his happiness ? I am certain this marriage will be for his happiness. Edith is a dear woman. I am sure you will learn to love her. Don't be the only shadow on the happiness of Dalmore.' Ellen Macleod never spoke, nor did her countenance relax in the least. She fancied herself deeply injured, and her anger burned causelessly against the inoffensive woman who had supplanted her. She was a proud, hard, jealous-minded woman, and Lady Ailsa's gentle pleading fell with very little effect on her ears. 'Macdonald is his own enemy, Lady Ailsa. He has not calculated what expense and extravagance this step will lead him into. He will find a wife and family a very different matter to provide for from what it is at present. I have saved money for him, and Heaven knows what with grumbling, ill- conditioned tenants, who shirk their rent paying, and these hard times there is need for retrenchment somewhere. The revenues of Dalmore and Findowie combined would not suffice to keep up an extravagant establishment.' ' Mrs. Alastair will be more likely to diminish than increase the household expenditure. Her way of life since her marriage indeed, all her life has taught her strict economy,' said Lady Ailsa, with a slight sigh, for her heart was heavier than it had LAD Y AILS A 'S OPINION. 35 been when, she started on her mission. ' I assure yon, you axe imagining troubles and ills which will never come. Do be persuaded to make the best of this, Ellen. Go down some day and see Mrs. Alastair. Were I you, my pride would make me do it.' Ellen Macleod's face grew yet more grim with the sternness of a settled purpose. ' I have passed my word. I do not approve of this foolish marriage ; and I cannot think her a woman of principle or feeling. I will not humble myself to her. If she becomes Lady of Dalmore she can afford to despise me, and will probably; so yon must leave us alone, Lady Ailsa.' At that moment the door was thrown open, and little Fergus, his fair face flushed with out-door exercise, and his tangled yellow hair tossing on his open brow, came bounding into the room, with a wet and muddy collie at his heels. ' Oh, mamma, there is a carriage in the yard 1 ' he cried, but stopped short at the sight of the strange lady at the hearth. Lady Ailsa's motherly heart warmed to the bright-faced lad, and she stretched out her hands to him with a smile. But the lad drew back with a shyness quite unusual with him, and kept close by his mother's side. Lady Ailsa saw the mother's bosom heave as her full eye fell on the childish figure at her side. ' Mamma,' said Fergus, in a whisper perfectly audible through the whole room, 'is that the lady who is to put us out of Dalmore?' Ellen Macleod's colour rose. 'That is Lady Ailsa Murray, Fergus. Make your bow to her, and then take Colin downstairs. Don't you see he is fitter for the stable than the drawing-room ? How often have I told yon not to bring the dogs into the house?' ' Uncle Graham said I might have Colin in, mamma,' said the boy ; and, with a graceful salutation to Lady Ailsa, he left the room. ' I must apologise for Fergus's hasty speech, Ailsa,' said Ellen Macleod, as she rose to pour out the tea. ' He is only a child, and has not yet learned the wisdom of the world.' 'It is hardly fair to poison his mind, Ellen/ said Lady Ailsa, 36 SHEILA. in gentle rebuke. ' You might have given Edith a chance, at least, to win his unprejudiced love.' ' You don't understand,' said Ellen Macleod fiercely, for her passion rose, and her eye grew dark with the swelling tumult within. ' That is where it stings. I have watched the boy with all a mother's pride, and loved him for his manliness and noble bearing. I thought he was giving fair promise of fitness for the position I thought would be surely his. And now I must crush every manly attribute, and make him fit to serve others ; for, God help him 1 he has now no heritage. By the labour of his hands and the sweat of hu brow, Fergus Macleod must earn his bread.' CHAPTER IV. WELCOME HOME. O child, thy life should be Ev'n as thy open brow, Careless and lovely. HOWITT, I HE chill October rain beat upon the window panes, against which a small cliild face was pressed, peering out wistfully into the gathering night. It was little Sheila Murray, all alone in the drawing- room, watching for her mother's home-coming to Dalmore. She had been parted from her for three weeks, and though the time had been spent happily enough among her cousins at Murrayshaugh, and though gentle Aunt Ailsa had acted a mother's part towards her, what that parting had been to the child was only known to herself. She was a strange, quiet, clinging little mortal, thoughtful beyond her years, not given much to the boisterous play of other children, though she was a perfect child in all her ways. There was something touch- ing and pathetic in her attitude and expression as she sat curled up on the window-seat, looking out on the dreary land- scape, though she could not see the road for the blinding mist of rain. She wore a white dress ; and Aunt Ailsa, out of compliment to the Laird of Dalmore, had bidden Anne, who was retained as nurse at Dalmore, tie a sash of the Macdonald 38 SHEILA. tartan about her waist. The child, quick to notice the nev ribbon, had asked its meaning, and Anne had answered back that it was her new papa's colours, which she must always wear now. ' Her new papa's colours 1 ' The child had pondered these words in her small mind for hours, without being able to understand their meaning. Poor little Sheila! Dalmore, that magic word which had been so often on her lips of late, had grievously disappointed her when she alighted from the carriage at its entrance that dreary afternoon. It had chilled her young heart ; and when she was dressed and sent into the big, gloomy drawing-room to await ner mother and her ' new papa's ' home-coming, a great sense af desolation had come upon her, and, curling herself up in the deerskin by the fire, she cried herself to sleep. When she awoke, the shadows were gathering in the long room, the wood fire was smouldering on the hearth, and Anne, gossiping with her new master's domestics, had forgotten all about her little charge. The house was very silent. Not a sound was to be heard but the soughing wind among the pines, and the monotonous plashing of the rain upon the panes. The carriage was very late, but, before it arrived, an uninvited guest came up the brae to the house, and, with all the freedom of familiarity, marched up to the drawing-room, muddy boots and all. At the opening of the door, Sheila slipped from her high perch on the window-seat, and came expectantly across the floor. But instead of her mother it was only a small boy who entered, attired in a damp kilt, and with the feathers in his bonnet dripping in his hand. He shut the door, and advanced into the room with a peculiar expression on his face. The two children stood on the hearth-rug, surveying each other with delightful deliberation for a few minutes. Then Sheila spoke, with a curious mixture of shyness and dignity ' Who are you, little boy ? ' ' Fergus Macleod, 1 was the prompt reply. ' Who are you?' 4 Sheila Murray. My mamma and me have come to live here now with Mr. Macdonald,' said Sheila proudly, and WELCOME HOME. 39 beginning to smooth the ribbon of her sash with her dainty little hand. ' Do you know Mr. Macdonald, little boy my papa ? ' ' He is my Uncle Graham,' said Fergus, drawing himself up. <-My mother and I lived here before you came.' * And where do you live now ? ' * At Shonnen,' said the boy, with a break in his voice which made Sheila open her eyes very wide indeed. ' Don't cry, little boy,' she said, in a gentle, patronizing, reassuring tone, such as a mother might employ towards her child. * Would you like better to live in this house?' 'Yes; Shonnen is a little house, and it is on the roadside,' said Fergus contemptuously. ' I can't live in it.' 'Well, I'm sure my mamma and my new papa will let you live here if you ask them. It is such a big house rooms, and rooms, and rooms, nearly as many as Aunt Ailsa's. Then you and I could play cattie and doggie. Do you know cattie and doggie, little boy ? ' ' No ; I never play. I'm a great deal too old for that. I am nine,' said the lad. ' Are you five yet ? ' ' O yes ; next Sunday is my birthday, and I am six. See, my sash is the same colour as your kilt. Don't touch it, little boy ; your hands are all wet.' ' I'm not touching it, and my hands are quite dry,' said Fergus quickly. ' Don't call me a boy. I can ride Uncle Graham's Mora a big, wild horse and I have had a pony since I was six. Did you ever see a pony ? ' ' Yes ; I ride on Alastair Murray's pony when I am at Aunt Ailsa's. Do you know Aunt Ailsa, Fergus ? I love her next to mamma.' ' No, I don't know your Aunt Ailsa,' said Fergus quickly. In looking round the familiar room it had suddenly come upon the boy that he had no right in Dalmore. Young though he was, he had learned to love the place with a love which was to sadden youth and early manhood with a dark cloud. Very early had the cross fallen on the shoulders of Fergus Macleod. * You are a rude little boy, Fergus Macleod,' said Sheila, in her quiet, quaint way. 'Aunt Ailsa makes her boys so 40 SHEILA. polite to ladies. But then you have no Aunt Ailsn, Have you come over to see mamma and me to-day ? ' ' No ; I came because there is no garden or stable, or^-or anything, at Shonnen,' said the boy, with a strange, weary look. 4 Will your mamma be angry if she sees me here ? * 'My mamma is never angry. She will let you live here, I am quite sure,' said Sheila promptly. ' And I'll ask my new papa. He said he would buy me a pony, and you can ride on it, Fergus, when I am not on it.' 4 My mother said you would never let us into Dalmore again, and so I came up to see,' said Fergus. * Just sit down, and wait till my mamma comes,' said Sheila reassuringly ; and, taking the boy's bonnet from his hand, she led him over to the fire. It was delightful to see her; the exquisite blending of sympathy and protection and childlike tenderness in her whole demeanour, was unlike a child. So chese two, whose way of life was to lead them together into many strange paths, met, and drew to each other, without any prevision of that eventful future in store. Presently the servant came in to replenish the fire, and, after one look at the children, sitting contentedly side by side, went jut with a tear in her eye. 'I wish Leddy Macleod saw the picture in the drawing- room,' she said to her mates. ' It wad serve her for meat an' irink for a week, an' more. I dout she'll no divide Shonnen in' Dalmore.' Almost as she made her speech, the carriage with the Laird and his wife swept up to the door, and in a few moments Kdith Murray crossed the threshold of her new home, leaning m her husband's arm. Sheila was not in the hall, but through the open doors, and down the staircase, there came floating the merry music of children's voices, and the clatter of hurrying feet 4 Did any of her cousins come up with Miss Sheila, Anne ? ' she asked, with a smile, turning to the familiar face of her own maid. 4 No, ma'am,' said Anne, smiling too ; for she was delighted to see her mistress looking so well and happy. WELCOME HOME. 41 Then the Laird and his wife went upstairs together, and, the drawing-room door being open, they had a full view of the firelit interior, where a little elf in white was running laughing round the room, pursued by Fergus, laughing all his might too. Cattie and doggie had begun 1 ' Who is that, Graham ? ' she whispered. 1 Ellen's boy, my dear. The bairns will make peace in Dalmore,' he said significantly. 'Hulloa! is not this a pretty din to kick up in a drawing-room, eh ? ' The children came to a dead stop ; then Sheila, with a shriek of delight, sprang into her mother's arms; but, in spite of his uncle's reassuring smile, the boy hung back, remembering his mother's words. Ay, Ellen Macleod had poisoned the young heart against Dalmore, and could she have seen the picture in the drawing-room that night, her ire would have been great indeed. ' This is Fergus, mamma ; such a nice little boy,' said Sheila, presently slipping from her mother's arms. ' He is afraid of you, mamma just think 1 ' 'Fergus will not be afraid of me, darling, after to-night/ said Edith Macdonald; and at sound of the sweet voice the boy's eyes were raised almost wonderingly to the face of the speaker. She put her two soft, kind hands on his shoulders, and, bending down, kissed him straight on the brow above his earnest eyes. * I am Aunt Edith, dear. Do you think you will love me a little ? I intend to love you a great deal.' ' Oh, Uncle Graham 1 ' cried the lad, breaking from her, and holding fast by his uncle's hand, for there was a perfect con- fidence between them ; ' mother said they would hate me, and put me out of Dalmore.' * And you have come to see for yourself, Fergus ? ' said his uncle. 'That was right. Learn early to form and act on your own opinion. It will make you independent. Well, Edith, in spite of the dreary look of the place outside, this looks comfortable enough, eh?' he asked, turning to his wife. ' Yes ; this is a lovely old room, Graham, and the children 42 SHEILA. make it home-like. If only the boy's mother had stayed to welcome me,' she said in a low voice. 'She'll never do that, so there's no use making yourself miserable about it,' said Macdonald, and his mouth took a stern curve. ' Well, Fergus, what's been happening in Amulree and the Fauld while I have been away ? ' 'Nothing much, Uncle Graham. I fought Angus M'Bean in the school on Tuesday, and the master thrashed me.' 'What school?' ' Peter Crerar's. I go there now.' Macdonald bit his lip, and his wife saw his eyes flash. 'Upon my word, Ellen's folly transcends everything!' he muttered. ' But why in the world can't you go on as usual with your lessons at the manse ? ' The boy's face flushed, and he did not speak. ' Did your mother give you any reason, Fergus ? ' asked his uncle quickly, noticing his hesitation. ' She said that as I would need to make my own living, the sooner I made friends among poor boys the better,' said the boy, in a slow and pained voice, for he felt it acutely. He was old beyond his years. The constant companionship of grown- up people had given his childish thoughts the maturity of manhood. Though he was compelled to obey his mother, he had felt her injustice and foolish resentment. It was scarcely a child's action to come to Dalmore to see for himself how matters stood. 'Angus M'Bean is the factor's son, Edith,' said Macdonald, looking towards his wife. ' Pray, what were ye fighting about ? ' ' He laughed at my mother, Uncle Graham, and asked how we liked Shonnen,' said Fergus, with heaving bosom, * and I just knocked him down straight on the floor in the school. The master thrashed me, and when we got out I fought Angus on the road.' 'You bloodthirsty young rascal!' laughed Macdonald; but his wife saw that he was pleased with the spirit of the boy. 'And who beat?' 'It was a drawn battle,' said Fergus proudly. *But I'll fight him when I'm bigger. He's a far bigger boy than me, WELCOME HOME. 43 and stronger, too. But he's a coward, Uncle Graham. He bits little boys and girls.' It would be impossible to set down the emphasis which Fergus laid on the last word. 'Then he's a horrid boy, and I hate him 1' cried Sheila shrilly. 'I like you, Fergus, and you can ride on my pony if you like.' 'But he has his own pony. Donald is in the stable, isn't he, Fergus?' 'Yes, Uncle Graham; but mother says I'm not to go on him, nor come to Dalmore any more,' cried Fergus, in a great burst of sorrow ; and, ashamed of his tears, he turned round and ran out of the room. None attempted to detain him. They saw that the childish heart was full, and that it would have its vent. Edith Mac- donald turned away to her dressing-room with a shadow in her eyes and on her heart. 'What a woman, Graham!' she said, when she was able to speak. 'Although she is his mother, she is not fit to have the care of that fine, sensitive-souled boy. She'll break his heart.' Tm not done with Ellen yet,' said Macdonald grimly. ' She has forgotten that her husband left me guardian of the boy, and she can't do what she pleases with his education and upbringing. Peter Crerar's school, indeed! The woman's a perfect fool.' ' It must have been a great blow to her, when she acted so,' said Edith, with a sigh. 'I wonder if we have acted right, Graham?' 'Now, Edith, after all my warnings, you are just going to fret about this. What you have to do is to make yourself happy and at home in Dalmore. It is yours now. I'll deal with Ellen. As for the boy, if he turns out as he promises, he'll not be a sufferer. I like him, and I'll do my duty by him. But Ellen must be brought to her senses first, or she'll ruin him.' Meanwhile, Fergus, with wet eyes, and sore, sore heart, was running all his might down the avenue, away from Dalmore. When he reached the bridge spanning the Girron Burn, he 44 SHEILA. stood on it a little while with the rain beating down upon him, watching the foaming torrent, whose current carried all before it. Three days' rain had brought the burn down in flood. There was something soothing to the boy in the swift rush of that wild tide, and before he had watched it for many minutes he began to wonder how many days it would be before he could fish the burn. There was a long yellow line in the far west, and the lowering clouds were beginning to lighten, and the wet caps of mist to roll from the mountain tops. The storm was nearly over, and by Saturday, he calculated, the burn might be in order. Having arrived at this conclusion, he walked soberly over to the road, and, passing by the school and the inn, turned off to his new home. It was a bare, barren-looking house, not much bigger than a cottage, though it was called Shonnen Lodge. It stood by the roadside, and had no garden, but only a few stunted birch trees at either side, and the gaunt, bare slope of Craig Hulich rising abruptly behind it. It was a bitter change indeed from Dalmore, and there is no doubt that both mother and son felt it keenly. Ellen Macleod had missed the boy from the house, and, watching by the upper front windows, she saw him cross the Girron Burn, and guessed where he had been. She opened the door to him herself, and bade him come in, in a sharp, angry voice. 'You've been at Dalmore, Fergus?' 'Yes, mother,' he answered, in a low voice. And are you satisfied now?' she asked snappishly. *I saw them ride by in their fine carriage. You got a sorry welcome, I expect, that you have come back so soon ? * ' Mother, I don't think they are what you said,' he ventured to say, in a low voice. 'Aunt Edith is very kind.' ' Aunt Edith, indeed 1 Have you got that length already ? ' she asked sourly. ' Do you know you deliberately disobeyed me this afternoon, Fergus ? ' * I am sorry, mother. I forgot.' 'That is no excuse. If you forget what I say again, Fergus, I must punish you very severely. I will not do it to-day, as I suppose you were curious to see them,' she said contemptu- WELCOME HOME. 45 ously. ' Hear me again. You are not to go to Dalmore. You have no right in it. That woman and her child have taken it from you. She is not your aunt. I forbid _you to call her aunt.' The boy never spoke, but crouched down by the fire like a dog who has been beaten for a fault he cannot understand. He thought of the place he had left not long ago of the happy, laughing child; of the sweet-faced, kind- voiced mother ; and of his uncle, whom, with all his sternness, he dearly loved. No doubt the tie which binds mother and child is strong, but can it not be weakened nay, almost severed by coldness and neglect? Ellen Macleod had done very little to win the boy's love, and he had a deep, sensitive, yearning heart. She did not know what a harvest of anguish she was heaping up for herself ay, and for him ; for there came a day when the conflict betwixt choice and duty became a matter of awful moment for Fergus Macleod. CHAPTER V. THE KIRK OF AMULREE. But on that gentle heart a shadow fell And darkly lay, stealing the sunlight sweet From out Her life. HE next day was the Sabbath. It dawned fair and bright for October, with a clear, soft sky overhead, and a sprinkling of hoar-frost scattered like manna on the ground. The roads even were made crisp and firm by the first frost of the season, and walking was very pleasant. The Laird's folk went on foot to the church in Amulree, Macdonald and his fair wife before, and Anne, with Sheila, coming up behind. There was a goodly gathering in the kirk, for the fine season had tempted the shooting tenants to linger longer than usual, and all the country folk turned out in expectation of seeing the new lady of Dal more. They could not think enough of it when they saw her come walking up the road so humbly and unostentatiously, like themselves, without a bit of display or grandeur to make her conspicuous. The kirk stood on a piece of rising ground over- looking the river, as it ran swiftly and silently from its source in the loch. It was a fine situation, and the church itself was a picturesque -white-washed building, of long, narrow construc- tion, and having a curious little belfry, containing a tinkling, THE KIRK OF AMULREE. 47 old-fashioned bell. The grassy enclosure surrounding the church was used as a burying-ground, as was evidenced by the uneven mounds scattered here and there, though there were but few headstones to be seen. The Laird's pew was on the left hand of the pulpit, and after entering, Mrs. Macdonald knelt for a moment in silent prayer an action so unusual in the kirk of Amulree, that one looked to the other, and there were even more than one solemn head- shaking. It was rather like a Papist, they thought, but hoped the Laird had not been drawn into an unholy marriage. In these few brief seconds Edith Macdonald had time to breathe a passionate prayer for a blessing on her new life and home. The Laird looked proud and happy enough, however. There was no doubt as to his opinion about the step he had taken; and as for Sheila, she sat very bolt upright, with her big brown eyes wandering over the whole interior of the kirk. It was the very funniest church she had ever been in in all her life. The Laird's seat was cushioned, and the boards were laid pretty evenly on the floor, but along the passages and, indeed, in all the other pews there was no attempt at systematic flooring ; and in many places, notably under the long com- munion table, which ran from end to end of the church, the sandy soil was quite uncovered. It was a cold, uninviting place altogether, very different from the little Episcopalian chapel in Dunkeld, which Edith had regularly attended. Then the pulpit and the precentor's box below were curious narrow contrivances, very deep and narrow, in which the preacher's eloquence was kept within due limits. But the kirk of Amulree had always been noted for the solidity of its pulpit ministrations, and had no connection with such frivolities as loud shouting of the Word, and senseless throwing about of the arms to enforce its doctrine. A fine drowsy atmosphere usually pervaded the kirk during the three-quarters of an hour the sermon lasted. Just as the bell began to ring, the Laird opened the door of the pew, and in walked Colin, quite doucely, and curled himself up on the floor. He had been over at Shonnen, and 48 SHEILA. had come to church, as usual, at Fergus Macleod's heels. After Colin lay down, the Laird kept his eye on the door, wonder- ing how Ellen would conduct herself, and whether she would have the presumption to come down and sit in the pew beside the woman against whom she cherished such causeless anger. She came in at length, with her thick crape veil hanging down over her face, and took a seat in a pew near the door, out of sight of the folk from Dal more. Sheila's small stature prevented her seeing where Fergus went, but she was sorry he did not come to sit by her. Her attention, however, was presently diverted by the entrance of an individual in a sweep- ing black cloak, who came down the aisle with an air of dignity very impressive to behold. It was not the minister, however, but Ewan M'Fadyen, the precentor, quite as important and necessary an official as the minister perhaps, in his own estimation, more so. He stepped into his box, closed the door, and blew his nose with an astounding report, Sheila watching him with the most open-eyed wonder all the while. Her mother could not but smile, indeed, at the expression on her face. The Laird smiled too, when Ewan, without the least shame or attempt to hide his object, stood up and turned towards the Dalmore pew. Now Ewan had a peculiar cast in his eye, which gave his face a somewhat evil expression, and when he was looking intently at anything, he screwed his ' skelly ' eye up until it contorted the side of his face and made his visage a sight to see. In this singular but characteristic manner Ewan stared at the Laird's wife for a full second or so, and then, slowly nodding his head, sat down and took a pinch of snuff, indicative of his absolute approval Edith hastily drew down her veil, not only to hide her rising colour, but the smile which was like to become a laugh. Then the minister gave out the psalm, and Ewan stood up to raise the tune, which was 'Martyrdom.' Ewan M'Fadyen's mode of conducting the psalmody was unique in the extreme, and alasl too often provocative of mirth among the ungodly strangers who were occasional visitors to the kirk of Amulree. He held the book directly out from his nose, nml had his five fingers carefully spread out upon the boards. THE KIRK OF AMULREE. 49 After having read aloud the first two lines in a half singing voice, he cleared his throat, and attempted to raise the first note. But it would not come, as a usual thing, until the fourth or fifth clearing of the throat, each time more loudly than before, and with his one eye closed up all the time. The magic seemed to lie in his fingers, for when they began to move on the boards Ewan moved also, and the tune was raised. His utter unconsciousness of any oddity or singularity in his preliminaries was most delightful to behold ; but it was a fear ful trial to the decorum of those unaccustomed to the scene. The Laird's wife shook with silent laughter, and even Macdonald thought Ewan excelled himself. Sheila amused him, perhaps, more than Ewan. She stood on tiptoe on the seat, with her small neck craned, in order that she might have a full view of the precentor's box. There was no smile on her face, or any sign of amusement only a look of perfect, solemn wonder, which was irresistible. I fear that, on the whole, the spirit of solemnity befitting the solemn exercises of the day was rather wanting in the Laird's pew that morning. Edith, however, enjoyed the sermon, and had time to compose her thoughts. She wished, indeed, that the service had closed with the sermon, for Ewan's extraordinary gestures and grimaces once more banished every serious thought from her mind. They did not hasten out of the church, and when they rose at length all the benches were empty except the seat where Ellen Macleod sat, with her grave-faced boy by her side. Edith saw her, and, without a moment's hesitation, stepped round before the precentor's box, and stood directly before her. 'Ellen,' she said, and her sweet voice shook as she extended her hand, ' we are in the house of God. Will you not touch my hand in token of friendship and forgiveness if I have un- wittingly done wrong?' It was an appeal few could have resisted. The eyes of Fergus were raised to his mother's face with an imploring look, but without any effect on the stony heart of Ellen Macleod. She rose from her seat, and, without raising her veil, swept her brother's wife a little haughty curtsey, and passed out of the church. 4 50 SHEILA. Edith hastily drew down her own veil, not wishing her husband to see her tears. But he saw the whole scene, and when she joined him there was a dark cloud on his brow. 1 You ought not to have humiliated yourself to her, Edith,' he said, more hastily than he had ever spoken to her before. But at that moment their attention was directed by Ewan M'Fadyen standing on the doorstep in his robe of office, with a bland smile on his face. ' I wish you good-morning, Laird, and a full measure of prosperous felicity to yourself and your noble lady,' said Ewan, trotting out his best English and most 'lang-nebbit' words to grace the occasion; 'and I make bold to prophesy and prognosticate that never, in all the pellucid annals of the ancient house of Macdonald, has a fairer, more noble lady reigned paramount in Dalmore.' It was a happy interruption, and the Laird burst into a laugh. ' Oh, Ewan, man, spare your lang-nebbit words. Stick to plain speaking or Gaelic, if you want to be impressive,' he said. ' Mrs. Macdonald, let me present Ewan M'Fadyen, our worthy precentor. He is a tenant in Achnafauld. You'll likely know him better by and by.' 'I hope so,' said Edith; and, with a pleasant smile, she extended her hand to honest Ewan. ' May every auspicious blessing descend on your honourable head, madam 1' he said, bending his shaggy head over it. 'As I said before, I prognosticate again that you will be the author and originator of many blessed days for Dalmore.' Macdonald, laughing still, took his wife on his arm and hurried her out to the carriage, which he had ordered to be in waiting to convey them up the steep ascent to Dalmore. The country folks were lingering about the churchyard and the manse road, eager for a better look at the Laird's wife. They were mostly his tenants, though Edith did not know it, but she had a smile for all. Just as Macdonald handed his wife into the carriage, a horseman rode up, and, taking off his hat, drew rein, evidently wishing to be presented. 1 Angus M'Bean, farmer in Auchloy, and my steward, Edith, THE KIRK OF AMULREE. 51 whispered Macdonald. ' You must excuse us, M'Bean. Come up to the house and pay your respects to Mrs. Macdonald. The kirk door is hardly the place to hold a levee.' Somewhat chagrined, Mr. M'Bean raised his hat again, and rode off. He had hoped for a better reception before all the cottars, and Mrs. Macdonald's acknowledgment of him had been a little distant. She was not, indeed, very favourably impressed by his hard, keen visage and rather forward manners. Angus M'Bean did not like to be called a land-steward. He always called and wrote himself factor to Macdonald of Dalmore. ' The manners and customs up here are rather primitive, Graham,' said Mrs. Macdonald, as the carriage rolled along the smooth road to the Girron Brig. ' Ay ; perhaps I ought to have prepared you for Dugald's eccentricities. We are accustomed to them, and they do not strike us. He is quite a character. Did you notice his noble manner of expressing himself ? ' *It is about as absurd as his singing,' laughed Edith. 1 Ay ; if he can get a long word hauled in, in it goes, whether it has any fitness or not. I suppose it must have some sig- nificance to himself. They get some terrible laughs at him, along at Donald Macalpine, the smith's. Well, Sheila, you are very quiet.' 4 Oh, mamma, such a funny, funny church ! ' said Sheila, able to laugh now at what had held her spell-bound at first. ' Did you ever see a church where dogs go to ? Papa, may I take Tory next Sunday ? ' * I doubt Tory would not keep so quiet as Colin. He has not been trained to church-going,' said Macdonald. 'The shepherds' dogs always accompany their masters to church in the Highlands.' ' Fergus never came to speak to us, papa. Does he live far away from here ? ' ' At the other side of the church. I daresay you will see him. to-morrow. He is always about on the hills,' said Macdonald ; and began to name some of the hills to Edith, for he saw her eyes cloud. Ay, Ellen Macleod had cast a shadow on Dalmore which would be ever present with its gentle mistress, robbing 52 SHEILA. her married life of half its sweetness. Macdonald, who was not in the least put about by his sister's foolish conduct, except to feel a trifle annoyed when any new phase of it struck him, could not understand how it weighed upon his wife's heart, nor how she brooded upon it in silence and solitude, and prayed that the only cloud on her happiness might be swept away. It might have given Ellen Macleod a grim satisfaction had she known that her uncompromising enmity was to her brother's wife a veritable skeleton in the cupboard. 'Now, Edith,' said Macdonald, following her up to her dressing-room when they entered the house, ' I could not hear what you said to Ellen, but I know it was an appeal of some sort. It is to be the last. She shall beg your pardon before she sets foot in Dalmore again. I mean what I say.' He put his hands with a kind of rough kindness on her shoulders, and turned her face to him, in order to enforce his words. She tried to smile at him, as she answered tremu- lously, 1 1 wanted to give her a chance, Graham. I am so happy, I cannot bear that there should be any cloud. Do you think she will relent?' ' Do you see Craig Hulich over there, Edith ? Do you think it could walk over here and place itself in the Girron Burn? Ellen Macleod will never forgive you, so the sooner you forget that she is in existence the better.' ' I am sorry for the boy. We must try and make it up to him, Graham.' ' If she will let me. But she'll watch him, poor laddie I like a hawk. But I'll keep my eye on Fergus for his father's sake, and for his own. He's as fine a lad as ever wore the kilt, and none of his mother's ill-temper about him, if she does not spoil him in the making.' It seemed a fearful thing to Edith Macdonald that a woman should cherish a mortal enmity in her heart, and pride herself that she never forgave an injury. She could not understand Ellen Macleod's fierce, dark creed ; her heart had in it nothing of resentment, but only pity, and she would have served her if she had any opportunity. But Ellen Macleod went home THE KIRK OF AMULRRE. 53 to the plain house of Shonnen filled with hate and anger against her brother's wife, who looked so fair and sweet and young by his side that d;iy in the kirk of Amulree, sitting in the seat she had usurped. And Fergus, weighed down by a feeling of desolation and misery he could not understand, walked with downcast head by her side, and never a word passed between them. The boy suffered as she had no idea of. He had a feeling heart and a sensitive soul. Perhaps he was too young to comprehend the difference his uncle's marriage might make for him ; but I would rather believe that there was that in him which could rise above such selfish and sordid considerations. I do not think that Fergus M'Leod, though he is not perfect, will disappoint us in the end. * Did you see the vain thing, like a peacock, with the nodding feathers in her bonnet? not a fit head-dress for the kirk,' said his mother, finding her tongue at length, when they came in sight of Shonnen. ' A vain, empty peacock 1 and she has made a bonnie fool of jour Uncle Graham.' 1 How, mother ? ' ' I saw the folk laugh at the old grey-headed man handing her with such pride into the coach. Silly, silly fools! She'll lead him a fine dance yet, or I'm mistaken. What did you think of her, Fergus?' she asked, suddenly bending her dark eyes keenly on the boy at her side. ' I thought, mother, she looked like an angel,' said the boy simply, and without hesitation ; for such, indeed, had been his thought as he saw the pale, fair, sweet countenance shining under the nodding feathers of the bridal bonnet. ' Oh, of course you'll stick up for her I ' said his mother sourly. ' Boy, do you think there is no duty from a son to his mother? I think I'll need to get you to read the command- ments and the Catechism this very day.' The boy's lips quivered ; and when they passed through the gate of Shonnen, instead of following his mother into the hoiise, he turned round the end, and, climbing up the rising ground, threw himself down on a heathery hillock among the scanty birches. Colin followed, and, sitting down beside him, lifted one sober 54 SHEILA. paw and let it fall on his master's back. His tail was wagging sympathetically all the while, and suddenly Fergus flung his arms around his neck, and buried his face in his shaggy hair. ' Oh, Colin, lad ! ' he cried, and all the sore grief he found so ill to thole was expressed in that weary cry, there's only you an' mel* CHAPTER VL THE NETHER MILLSTONE. Dark is the soul whose sullen creed can bind In chains like these. 0. "W. HOLMM. ACDONALD rode down to Shonnen Lodge next morn- ing before breakfast. He knew his sister was an early riser, and he was anxious to have this matter settled as soon as possible. He was very angry that she should have dared to send the boy to the Fauld school, and knew it was only done in a moment of passion to vex him. For Ellen was proud enough ; and, though it had pleased her to make a great talk about the poverty and obscurity to which her brother's marriage had consigned her, she would not have allowed any one else to hint at such a thing. To any outsider, not intimately connected with the family, she professed herself quite well pleased with the new arrangement at Dalmore. Fergus, an early riser too, was out on the hill, and, seeing his uncle come, flew down to meet him. * Yes, you can take Mora, and ride her gently along the road, Fergus, while I talk to your mother. Up you go I ' With a little assistance from his uncle, Fergus sprang delightedly to the saddle, and cantered off down the road towards Loch Fraochie. His uncle stood a moiutnt to admire 56 SHEILA. the boy's splendid bearing in the saddle, and to note how well he kept the fiery mare in curb. Fergus Macleod feared no living thing in the world except his mother. The door was open, and Macdonald walked unceremoniously into the house. He found his sister in the little dining-room, sitting over the fire doing nothing. She merely looked up at her brother's entrance, but did not signify in any way that she was aware of his presence. ' Well, Ellen, how are you ? Fine morning after the rain,' he said heartily. 4 Is it? ' she asked briefly ; for she resented the happy, hearty ring in his voice, the brightness in his eye ; all signs of the happiness she so sorely grudged him. She considered them insulting to herself in her poor estate. 'Fergus came up to welcome his aunt on Saturday night, though you didn't. Still in the tantrums, eh ? ' Ellen Macleod made no reply. 'I didn't think you'd keep up an ill-will so long, Ellen,' he said gravely. 'Will you not come up and see my wife?' 'I passed my word, Macdonald. All I ask from you and yours now is to be left alone.' 'You are likely to be. You are not such pleasant company, ma'am,' returned Macdonald candidly. ' It's the boy I'm come about. So you've swallowed your pride, and sent him to school with the cottars' sons ? What's to be the meaning or end of this, I'd like to know ? ' ' I can do what I like with my own, I suppose ? ' said Ellen Macleod slowly ; ' and as Fergus will have to earn his bread by the labour of his hands, he had better accustom himself early to the society in which he is likely to move in future.' ' Ah, well I it won't do the lad any harm for a year or so,' said Macdonald ; and his off-hand way was extremely galling to his sister. ' I'll step in when I think there's need. You're making a pretty fool of yourself, Ellen, before the country-side, I can tell you.' ' Much do I care for the talk of the country-side 1 ' she exclaimed passionately. ' Go back to your pink-faced wife, THE NETHER MILLSTONE. 57 Macdonald, and leave me and mine in peace. You look gay and happy enough. You can do without us.' ' Oh, very well ; as I said before, it was the boy I came to see after. You won't be able to keep him out of Dalmore, Ellen.' 'I have laid my commands on him again. If he disobeys them he is to be severely punished.' 'Then the boy is to suffer too?' said Macdonald more gloomily. 'Be careful how you treat him, Ellen. It will not be easy for him to keep away from the old place. Let him come and go as he likes.' ' No, I shall not. If I am cruel it is to be kind. He would only set his heart more and more on the place, and the awaken- ing would be ten times more bitter. You are very wise in your own conceit, Macdonald, but you can't teach a mother how to treat her own son.' ' Well, well, perhaps not. I suppose I may speak to him in passing, may I?' asked Macdonald, with a slight smile, as he turned to go. She vouchsafed him no reply, and so the unsatisfactory interview came to an end. Macdonald was not in the least depressed by it, except for the boy's sake. He felt tempted to press him to come to Dalmore as often as he pleased, but it would not be right, he knew, to set so young a child in direct defiance of his mother's will, though that will were harsh and unjust. ' Oh, Uncle Graham 1 it is just splendid to ride Mora,' cried Fergus, when he drew rein, breathlessly, in the middle of the road before his uncle. ' When I'm a man I'll buy a horse just like Mora.' 'In the meantime, my boy, what is to become of your own Donald? He'll eat his head off in the stable if you don't come up to Dalmore.' Fergus threw himself from the saddle, and his uncle saw that his eyes were wet. ' We must manage somehow, Fergus,' said Macdonald cheerily. ' When you want Donald, send one of the village boys up, and he'll bring him down to the Girron Brig for you. 58 SHEILA. And don't vex yourself. This cloud'll maybe blow over sooner than you think.' 'Oh, Uncle Graham!' The boy's face positively glowed through his tears, and he laid his cheek against his uncle's brown hand as it hung down by Mora's side. 'Do your best at Peter Crerar's, Fergus, and keep Angus M'Bean in order,' said Macdonald, with a twinkle in his eye. ' And never forget that your uncle's in Dalmore ay, and your aunt, too, Fergus. She wouldn't hurt a hair of your head.' ' Oh, I know. Good-bye.' Graham Macdonald did not readily part with money, but if ever the generous impulses of his heart had been called into play, the last few weeks had done it. Edith Murray had wrought a change, indeed, in grim Macdonald of Dalmore. So, when Mora cantered off, Fergus found himself with a golden sovereign in his palm, and what was much better, a glow of pleasure at his heart. Macdonald was a king in his nephew's eyes ; for, whatever the man's faults, and they were many, he had been a kind, affectionate guardian to his sister's son. Macdonald restrained his impatient Mora, and rode slowly along the river-side, keeping his eye on the fields as he went. A backward summer had made a late harvest in Strathbraan and Glenquaich, and the cottars in Achnafauld, whose crofts stood on the damp, cold soil at the top of Loch Fraochie, were like to have a poor return for their labour. There were several fields, indeed, lying partially submerged, and the standing stooks had a blackened, stunted appearance, which augured ill for the quality of the grain. Macdonald himself did not interfere with his tenants, all his dealings with them being carried on through the medium of Angus M'Bean, the factor, who lived in Auchloy, a snug domicile on the Garrows side of the loch. If there was a man in the strath hated and feared, it was Angus M'Bean, but by dint of his smooth tongue and economical management of the estate he had made his position secure. He was indispensable to the Laird. Mac- donald had really not the remotest idea of the way the tenants THE NETHER MILLSTONE. 59 were ground to the earth, and because he exacted the rent to the uttermost farthing, did not know at what cost and sacrifice it was paid. And Angus M'Bean took very good care that there were very few direct comings and goings betwixt the Laird and the tenants. Macdonald was struck by the pitiable appearance of the crofts, and determined to ask Angus M'Bean whether the poorer cottars were not likely to sustain any loss. It was the Laird's boast that his factor was a thoroughly practical man, for he had not only been in his early days a cottar himself, but had for many years now been farmer in Auchloy, the largest holding attached to Dalmore. His experience, therefore, fitted him in a peculiar way to understand the workings of the estate and the needs of the tenantry. The man might know his business well enough, but he was a tyrant and a coward, and his disposition was selfish and avaricious in the extreme. Mr. M'Bean did not approve of little crofts, nor of a large number of tenants on an estate. They gave too much trouble and too meagre returns, and it was his hope and ambition to see Achnafauld swept clean away from Glenqnaich, and Dalmore and Findowie let out in large farms. But his progress was very slow. As long as the rents were paid, the Laird approved the cottars remaining on their crofts. The same families had inhabited the little thatched cottages for hundreds of years in days, indeed, before the name of Macdonald was known in Glenquaich. The Laird was very seldom in the clachan, and when, on his return from visiting his sister, he rode Mora through the burn which wimpled past the doors, the wifies all ran out to give him a curtsey as he passed. They had a new interest in him now since he had become a married man, though they had thought him very stingy not to give something for them to make merry with at his bridal. The idea had never occurred to Macdonald himself, and nobody had suggested it to him. He drew rein and sprang from the saddle at the smith's door, one of the mare's shoes being loose. Donald Macalpine, the smith, was in at his breakfast, but in an instant he was out to wait upon the Laird, while Mary, his wife, looked at him over the white muslin screen at the window. 60 SHEILA. 4 Good -day, smith. Look to the mare's hind foot, will you? A stone in the burn tripped her up, and some of the nails are out. Fine morning after the rain.' ' Ay, sir, sure it is,' said Donald. ' I hope the Laird is weel, and his Leddy, too ? ' ' Very well, thank you. Poor weather for the harvest. The crofts seem in a sorry condition, Donald.' 'Ay,' said Donald, shaking his head as he scraped the mare's shoe with his knife. ' The Lord has a queer way o* workin*. It seems to me a needless wastry, an' a sinfu', though He can dae nae sin, to destroy the fruits of the earth after they are come to the ear.* 'The sun may shine yet, Donald,' said the Laird cheerily. ' There seems to be bulk enough.' ' Ay, but it's as green as leeks,' was Donald's brief comment. ' Wo, beestie 1 stand still.' Mora was growing impatient of the strange touch on her dainty limb, and it required all the smith's strong energy to keep her quiet. 'Anything new in the Fauld, Donald?' asked the Laird. 'Naething, but that Jenny Menzies has gotten Jock's twa bairns hame from Glesca, an' a bonnie ootcry she's makin' about them. 1 ' What has become of Jock ? ' 'Deid; an* his wife an' a'. They're nice bits o* bairns. The lassie's a wee doo ; the laddie has a wan'ert look. Malcolm and Katie, they are ca'd.' ' Two more scholars for Peter Crerar,' laughed the Laird. 'Ye hae gotten my nephew to school in the Fauld.' ' Ay, sure, an' Peter Crerar himsel' is neither to haud nor bind ower it,' said the smith. ' Weel, he'll get a guid education frae Peter. He has a held.' ' Well, well, it will do the lad no harm, Donald. Is she all right now ? ' said the Laird, springing to his saddle. ' Thanks to you ; give my respects to Mary.' Donald, with his hands under his leather upron, watched the Laird ride round by Rob Macnaughton's corner, then slowly sauntered into the house, which was pervaded by a THE NETHER MILLSTONE. 61 fine smell of toasted oatcakes, Mary being busy with her baking. 'That was the Laird?' Mary said, her sonsy face full of interest 'Ay, it was. I never saw the Laird mair frank an* free, Mary Macalpine,' Donald answered ; ' I canna think him as bad a man as Angus M'Bean of Auchloy would make out. There's a kindness in his eye like a sun-blink on the loch. I'd a mind to ask him was it his wull that the loch fishin' was ta'en awa' frae us. But I'll do it another day, Mary Macalpine, as sure as I stand here.' 'Donald, ye'll not meddle wi' it, my man, or we'll have Angus M'Bean down on us, an' he's an ill enemy. Eh ! Katie Menzies, my lamb, is that you?' she cried, with a motherly smile at a bonnie wee girlie, with yellow hair and eyes like the forget-me-not, who looked shyly in at the door. 'Is Malky here?' she asked, with a strong west country accent. ' The skule's gaun in, an' auntie's awfu' angry. Malky 's no' ready to gang. He got pawmies yesterday, an' he'll get them the day, for the maister's an' awfu' crabbit man.' 'Ay, Malky disna like the maister. Rin ye to the skule, Katie. Gie her a far], Mary, an' let her awa',' said the smith kindly. Til look for Malky. He'll be seekin' his lesson by the loch-side or on *he hill.' ' He's gaen gyte wi' Rob Macnaughton's sangs,' said Mary, as she gave Katie a crisp oatcake and a pat on the cheek. The smith laughed, and, ^ghting his pipe, stood in the porch a minute watching the bairns gathering in for the school. His heart warmed to them, and his eyes were filled with a fine light of soft tenderness. Mary and he had had but one child, who now slept in the burying-ground at Shian. He did not need to go far to seek Malcolm, the truant. He saw him away up the hill near Atichloy, a solitary, lonely figure among the browsing sheep. The bairn was a strange bairn, not like others. He loved nothing better than to wander by himself among the hills or by the burns, which were a great 62 SHEILA. and wonderful revelation to the boy, whose eyes till now had seen nothing but paved streets and big stone houses, which seemed to touch the very sky. He was a thorn in the flesh to hard, grasping Janet Menzies, his aunt, who looked upon the bairns as a heavy burden, and specially prophesied that the boy would never come to any good. CHAPTER VH. BAIRN DATS. O little hearts ! that throb and beat With such impatient, feverish heat Such limitless and strong desires. LONGFELLOW. HERE was no School Board in Achnafauld, and the cottars conducted their own municipal and educa- tional matters to please themselves. There was only schooling six months in the year, from November till May, the children being required on the land in the summer. The teacher, Peter Crerar, the son of a small farmer on the opposite side of the river, was a clever young man, quite competent for his duties, and many a good scholar was turned out of that primitive schoolroom by the edge of the Achnafauld burn. For his six months' work, Peter Crerar received the sum of 6 ; but his food was found, as he obtained his meals in rotation at the house of each pupil's parents. His own home was so near at hand, he had his lodging there, though, had he been from a distance, bed would have been found as well as board. It was a primitive arrangement, but all parties were satisfied, and the foundation of a good, solid education was laid in these young minds at a very nominal cost. Such was the academy to which, in a fit of spleen, Mrs. 64 SHEILA. Ellen Macleod had elected to send her son. There was a school in Amulree of a more ambitious type, but she had chosen Achnafauld because it was on Dalmore lands, and also because the factor's son, young Angus M'Bean, went to it. Not that the two boys had ever been friendly, the difference in their dispositions forbade it ; but, of course, Ellen Macleod knew nothing of this. She had a great respect for Dalmore's factor, and though she was a shrewd woman in most things, she could not see through Angus M'Bean. He was a hypocrite and a time-server, a man who would spare no effort to advance his own selfish and avaricious ends. He had held the factorship for five years, and had commended himself to the Laird by his assiduous attention to his interests. Never had there been less trouble on Dalraore and Findowie ; never had the rents been so punctually paid. Nevertheless, Angus M'Bean was slowly undermining the relations betwixt the cottars and the Laird, and discontent was smouldering hotly in Achnafauld. Fergus Macleod had enjoyed his study under Mr. Macfarlane at the manse of Amulree, and he thought it a strange and new thing that his mother should send him to Peter Crerar's school. As the smith stood in the doorway that morning, he saw the tall, handsome lad, in his dark Macdonald kilt, coming up the burn-side, and he shook his head. * It's hard on the laddie, ay is it ; the Fauld schoolin's no' for him,' said Donald to himself ; for the expression on the boy's face struck him. His head was down, and though he was walking quickly, there was a lack of energy and buoyancy about his whole demeanour. The smith, by reason of his fine instincts, was quick to note the significance of expression and attitude in both old and young. He saw at once that young Fergus Macleod was under a shadow, and his heart was full of sympathy for him. Under pretence of going to look for Malcolm, he sauntered through the clachan, and met Fergus at the stepping stones. * A fine mornin', sir,' he said, touching his bonnet as respect- fully as if he had been speaking to the Laird. 'Ay, Donald, a fine morning,' answered Fergus, with a sudden flash of a smile, like sunshine. BAIRN DA YS. 65 4 Ye are for the school, I see?' said Donald. ' How d'ye like in-bye ? Does Peter Crerar come up to Mister Macfarlane ? ' Fergus gave his bag a push on his shoulder, and a slight, tremulous smile crossed his face. 'I like Mr. Crerar very well, Donald, but I don't like the school as well as the manse.' ' Never mind, lad ; it's a deescipline. The Lord has His ain ways o' workin', an' guid comes oot o' evil. Ye'll be a daur on oor slips o' laddies ; Peter Crerar has his ain to dae wi' them.' ' He taws plenty, Donald. There's Malcolm Menzies on the hill near Auchloy. Is he not coming to school to-day ? ' ' Dear only kens. The laddie's gane wud sin' he cam' frae Glesca. I was pitten' a shae on yer uncle's meer this mornin', Maister Fergus.' ' Isn't she a beauty, Donald ? ' quoth the lad, his eye kind- ling with enthusiasm. ' When I'm a man I'll have a mare like Mora.' ' Ay, I houp sae ; mony o' them, sir,' said Donald fervently, for Fergus was a prime favourite of his. 'There's the wee M'Bean comin' by Dugal Bain's. He's late.' 1 So am I. Mr. Crerar never taws M'Bean nor me, and it isn't fair, for we need it as bad as the rest,' said Fergus, cross- ing the burn at a bound. 4 He wadna like to lick you, Maister Fergus, and the wee M'Bean he daurna. Though I think wi' you, Peter shouldna mak' flesh o 1 ane and fish o' anither.' Fergus laughed as he ran off, though he did not fully under- stand Donald's expression. He came up with the factor's son at the school door, but no greeting passed between them. Angus M'Bean, indeed, scowled at Fergus from under his heavy brows, but Fergus did not change his serene expression. ' We're late, Angus,' he said cheerily, for though he had given him a thrashing he deserved, he was not one to keep up spite. But Angus only scowled the deeper. He was what country folk call an ' ill-kindet loon, 1 and there was nothing in his appearance to win approbation. He was a little, squat fellow, with a fat, freckled face, and a shock of red hair. ' Puddin' 5 66 SHEILA. M'Bean,' he was irreverently called among the youngsters of the Fauld, who recognised no class distinction, and hated him with a cordial hatred. It suited the factor to send his boy for the winter months to the Fauld school, as it gave him ground for posing as a humble, unassuming man before the Laird, and he pretended to have the love of a brother and the interest of a true friend in his old neighbours. But they knew better. On the whole, Fergus Macleod did not greatly dislike the school, though, brought up as he had been, it was certainly a change for him to sit side by side with the rough cottar lads, who stared at his kilt, and made remarks to each other in Gaelic, which he only partially understood. Peter Crerar, out of his desire to do honour to the Laird's nephew, set up a small form near his desk, and put Fergus on it, alongside Angus M'Bean ; but the lad, young though he was, felt that no such distinction ought to be made, and begged that he might be allowed to sit among the rest. He was not any further forward than the bigger boys, for he was not much inclined, as yet at least, for study, and Mr. Macfarlane had not pushed him. Angus M'Bean was, no doubt, the sharpest boy in the school. In spite of the dour, slow, stupid look, his mental faculties were keen enough, and he speedily left his compeers behind. He had a profound contempt for the clachan lads, and showed it in every possible way ; and though they all hated him, he had never been laid a hand on till Fergus Macleod thrashed him. He caught him one day after he had pushed wee Katie Menzies from the stepping-stones into the burn, and nearly put her into a fit with fright. These were the sorts of things that amused the factor's son, so it may be guessed that there was not much love lost between Fergus and him. The Lord's Prayer was over, and all the slates out that morning, when the door was quickly opened, and a pale-faced lad, with large, melancholy eyes, came creeping into the room. It was Malcolm Menzies, who had returned unwillingly from his wanderings. He did not like the irksome routine of the school, and Peter Crerar, having no patience with the slow, shrinking, sensitive boy, who never had his lessons ready, was BAIRN DA YS. 67 needlessly hard upon him. No doubt, the strong, lazy urchins of Achnafauld needed the wholesome discipline of the tawse, and their brown paws could stand a very honest number of pawinies; but it was different with Malcolm Menzies. Wee Katie, who had been anxiously watching for her brother, made room on the form for him, and the boy slipped into his seat with a look of anxious fear. He was not allowed to sit on the front form with the big boys, who laughed at him, the ' toon's laddie,' as they called him, for being so backward and stupid at his lessons. The master was busy in the cupboard in the wall behind his desk, and as his back was to the scholars, he did not see Malcolm enter. But this was an opportunity for show- ing a mean revenge on the Menzies, which Puddin* M'Bean did not intend to let slip. So, when the master turned round and asked what the noise was, he was told that it was Malcolm Menzies coming in late. Now the master had had a good deal of trouble with Malcolm Menzies, who seemed to have no sense of the passage of time, and would come into the school at any time of the day. Only three days before he had been punished for the same offence, and Peter Crerar, being an ordinary, hot- headed young man, who thought the tawse the only way of establishing law and order in the school, made up his mind he would stand it no longer. ' Malcolm Menzies, come up ! ' he said, in that quiet way he was wont to assume in his sterner moods. Poor Malcolm trembled and grew paler, if that were possible, and wee Katie began to cry quietly, with her apron to her eyes. The boys, who enjoyed, as is the manner of their kind, ' a lickin" given to another, sat up expectantly, and Puddin' M'Bean grinned consequentially behind his slate. ' You're a mean sneak, Angus M'Bean ! and I'll give it you at leave,' whispered Fergus savagely ; for his hot Macdonald blood sprang up at the cowardly tell-tale. ' I'll tell the maister on you too, if you don't take care,' said Angus scowlingly. He was very brave when he was safely out of danger's way. Meanwhile, Malcolm Menzies, positively shivering with fear, came very, very slowly up between the forms to the master's desk 68 SHEILA. ' Where have you been, eh ? ' asked Peter Crerar, in a loud, peremptory voice. ' Up by Auchloy. I forgot, sir ; an' oh, dinna lick me, an 1 I'll never dae't again 1 ' said the lad piteously, but with dry eyes. Even after the worst licking he had never been seen to cry, but he brooded over things, and suffered often a thousand times more than the rest had any idea of. The smith partially understood him, but had refrained from giving Peter Crerar any instructions about him, thinking that the ordinary drilling at school might sharpen him up a bit, and knock the sensitive shrinking out of him. ' Just so,' said the master grimly. ' Hold out your hand.' The boy did so nervously, but put it quickly behind his back before the stroke fell. Then the master lost his temper, and fell upon him, hitting him on the shoulders and on the bare calves of his legs without mercy, but the boy never uttered a sound. Fergus Macleod could not keep his eyes away from the scene, but it made him really sick, and at last he could stand it no longer, but sprang from his seat. 'Oh, sir, don't! Stop, sirl Hit^ me. I'm abler than Malcolm I ' he cried, and held out his brave right hand at once. Then Peter Crerar put up his tawse, told Malcolm angrily to go back to his seat, and in his wrath actually bade the Laird's nephew hold his tongue. But it stopped the ' licking,' at which Puddin' M'Bean was grievously disappointed. Nothing pleased him better than the sight of another boy getting a good taste of the tawse. The pity was he should have so little experience of it himself. Malcolm Menzies crept back slowly to his seat, and sat down with a queer dazed look on his face. Wee Katie slipped her hand into his, and looked up into his face, her blue eyes shining with childish sympathy. * Dinna greet ony mair, Malky,' she whispered ; but Malcolm drew himself away from her touch, and when he saw the master in the press again, he rose very quietly and went out of the door like a shot, and that was the last time Malcolm Menzies ever sat upon a school form. He ran all his might into the smiddy, where Donald, in his leisurely fashion, was preparing for his work. BAIRM DA VS. 69 'Weel, lad, what is't?' he asked kindly, when Malcolm's shadow darkened the doorway. ' Oh, Donald, ask my auntie no' to let me to the sphule 1 ' said the lad, in a solemn, weary voice. ' I canna go back to the schule.' ' What way can you an' Peter Crerar no' agree ? Bless me ! what's the maitter wi* yer legs ? ' 'He did it,' said the lad, with swelling bosom. 'Oh, Donald, let me work in the smiddy or onything, but dinna let her send me to the schule. I winna gang.' ' Weel, if ye winna gang, yc winna, I suppose. Gae awa' to the peats, Malcolm, an' help to load the cairt, or I speak to yer auntie,' said the good-natured smith, who saw that the boy was fairly roused. He also feared that if practical Mary saw him she would think it her duty to send him back instantly to the school. So Malcolm, with a look of inexpressible relief, slipped quietly away round the smithy end, and away up to the road. He had absolute faith in Donald Macalpine, and did not fear what the end would be. Before leave-time it was noticeable that Puddin' M'Bean began- to grow uneasy in his seat ; and some of the lads who had overheard Fergus Macleod's remark, nudged each other in delightful anticipation of another fight. But Puddin' circumvented them by remaining in the school all leave-time, hoping that by the afternoon Fergus's ire would have cooled. He had a very vivid recollection of what he had received at the same hands for knocking wee Katie into the burn, and had no wish to repeat the dose. When the school 'scaled,' Puddin' made off; but Fergus was after him like a shot, and overtook him on the path before he had got up to the Auchloy road. ' Now then,' said Fergus, laying down his books, and looking fixedly at the scowling, fat face of the cowardly boy, ' what did you mean by telling on Malcolm Menzies? Didn't I tell you that if you meddled with any of the Meuzies again, I'd I'd do for you?' 4 You'd you'd better ! I'll tell my father if you touch me, said Angus dourly, shaking in his shoes, though he was twc years older, and much more stoutly built, than Fergus. 70 SHEILA. ' When you're telling, be sure and tell what you were licked for, then,' said Fergus, giving him a thump between the shoulders. By this time the whole school, like a hive of bees, were flocking up the path. Seeing he was sure to get the worst of it, Puddin' began to cry, which so exasperated Fergus Macleod that on the impulse of the moment he gave him a good push, which shoved him over the bank into the burn. The recent rain had brought it down a little in flood, and the pools were deep and the current strong. But Angus managed to scramble up the bank, and then what a shout of laughter arose from the bairns 1 The whole scene was so comical, that, though he was sorry for M'Bean's plight, Fergus could not help joining heartily in the laugh. Then Puddin', fairly roused, swore at Fergus, and ran off as fast as his legs would carry him to Auchloy. It was not far. About half a mile up the loch there was a fine sheltering clump of trees, in the midst of which stood Auchloy, the snug domicile of Macdonald's factor. The house, one of the shooting lodges, had recently been repaired and added to, and presented a very roomy, substantial appearance. There was a commodious steading at the back, and a well-filled stackyard, for Angus M'Bean held a large farm on the estate, and was always adding bit by bit to it. He had three children, Angus being the eldest, and then two little girls. Mrs. M'Bean, looking out of the dining-room window, saw the boy coming up the little avenue, and wondered at his dejected appearance. She came to the door to see what was the matter. When she saw him all wet, she threw up her hands in amazement. ' Mercy me, laddie 1 where ha'e ye been ? Ha'e ye fau'n into the loch ? ' In spite of her iusband's ambition to be a gentleman, and her own desire to be a fine lady, Mrs. M'Bean could never learn to talk 'English,' greatly to her husband's disgust. She was a south country woman, and would have been a fine, good-natured, harmless body if she had been let alone. But her efforts to seem other than she was, and to keep up her husband's position and ambition, fretted her temper, and made her miserably unhappy. In spite of her big house, her fine BAIRN DAYS. 71 clothes, and her horse and trap, she secretly often regretted the days when she had only been a cottar's wife in Achnafauld. At sight of his mother, Angus instantly began to blubber ; and when he was drawn into the dining-room, where his father was, he managed to tell a beautiful story, which fixed all the blame on Fergus Macleod, and converted him into a hero. 'This is the second time Fergus Macleod has ill-used you,' said the factor angrily. 'But never mind, Angus, lad,' he added, stroking his stubbly red beard more complacently. ' Tin- upsetting monkey! His wings are clipped already, but we'l! manage to crush him yet.' -ts* CHAPTER VHL AMONO THE FAULD FOLK. 80 these young hearts . Wandered at wilL TENNTSOH. WISH you'd hold your tongue, Sheila Murray ! you're frightening the fish, and they won't bite. Lie down, Colin.' 'I'm tired seeing you fish. You can't catch anything,' said Sheila, with the delicious candour of childhood. ' Lay down your rod, and let us play. Colin can't keep still, Fergus/ * You're just a bother, Sheila,' said Fergus, as he began to wind up his reel, for to him Sheila's word was law. They were great friends inseparable companions, indeed these two, though Fergus Macleod had never once crossed the threshold of Dalmore since his uncle's wife came home. Ellen Macleod had prevented him visiting the house, but she had laid no embargo on his actions outside, and had not the remotest idea of the long hours her boy and 'that woman's child' spent together. The Girron Brig was their trysting-place, and Colin their companion and protector, and the two bairns became almost necessary to each other's existence. Those long summer days spent among the hills and by the burn-side with Fergus were dreams of delight to Sheila Murray, who had been AMONG THE FAULD FOLK. 73 condemned to walk out by the Tay with a prim nursemaid, or play in solitary state in the little garden surrounding the cottage at Birnam. These days were scarcely a memory to the child. She never recalled them. She was boundlessly happy at Dalmore, and all the natural sunshine of her nature had freest vent. She was lull of tricks, and brimming with laughter. There was no mischief done at Dalmore in which she was not concerned, and she was just adored in the house. The servants who had served under Ellen Macleod's grim rule drew many a comparison, and blessed the day the Laird had brought home his gentle wife. She was not strong ; she had not been many times at the foot of Crom Creagh since she came home, but she was serenely, boundlessly happy. What- ever her husband was to others, he was full of care and tenderness for her and for Sheila. She did not trouble her head about the child, but allowed her to run wild among the heather, and watched her bonnie face and her bare round arms taking on the sun-dye with undisturbed content, knowing what a stock of health she was laying in for the days when study and care would demand her attention. 'You don't bother your head much about Sheila, Edith,' said Macdonald one day. ' Do you know where I saw her and the boy the other afternoon in the pouring rain ? ' No; where?' 'In the middle of the peat bog at Dalreoch. Fergus is learning botany from no less a person than Rob Macnaughton in the Fauld, and he trails poor Sheila everywhere with him.' ' She is just as willing to be trailed,' laughed Edith. ' It is not among the heather, or even in wet peat bogs, any harm will come to Sheila, Graham. As long as she is a child she is safe.' 'I shouldn't wonder, now, Edith, if the bairns themselves settle the vexed question about Dalmore,' laughed the Laird ; but Edith only smiled. She had no wish to anticipate the cares which encompass every mother's heart when she has a daughter to settle in life. So the bairns were allowed to wander side by side, or hand in hand, by mountain, moor, and loch, and that summer Sheila was filled with a wealth of country lore. She knew the nest of the whaup and the peesweep, the 74 SHEILA. haunt of the fox and the red deer, and the name of every wild flower which blew. That most perfect companionship between Fergus and herself laid the foundation of a deep affection which neither time nor circumstance could ever change, though it was destined to be rudely shaken by the vicissitudes of life. ' Look, Sheila,' said Fergus, laying his rod on the grass, and picking the leaf of a green plant from the marshy edge of the burn ; ' these leaves eat flies.' ' I don't believe it,' said Sheila promptly. * How can a leaf eat anything ? it has no mouth.' 'Bob Macnaughton showed me it; when the fly gets on the plant, it folds all its leaves over it and squeezes it dead.' 'Oh, Fergus Macleod! you horrid, cruel boy, to tell such stories ! ' said Sheila reprovingly. ' Girn at him, Colin. Isn't he a naughty boy ? ' ' I'd like to see Colin Macdonald girn at me, Sheila Murray. I'd girn him,' said Fergus, as he began to take his rod to pieces. ' I wish you were a boy, Sheila.' ' What for ? ' 'Because you'd like to fish, and chase hares, and all that kind of things. Girls always want to sit quiet, don't they ? ' ' I don't. If you don't want me, you can go away home, Fergus Macleod,' said Sheila quickly. ' I can play by myself with Colin.' ' No, you can't, or why do you always watch for me when I fish in the Girron? Besides, I never said I didn't like you. You aren't bad at all for a girl,' said Fergus graciously. ' I say, do you think you could walk to the Fauld ? ' ' Of course I could,' said Sheila promptly. ' Well, come on ; I want to speak to Rob Macnaughton about something very special, and if you like I'll make him tell you about the mist -wraiths up Glenquaich. He's seen them. Would you be frightened, Sheila?' ' No, I wouldn't,' said Sheila ; but her eyes opened wide with something like apprehension. ' What's mist- wraiths ? ' 4 Things that live in the mountains,' answered Fergus vaguely. ' I'm not very sure myself, because, you see, I never saw them. Hob'll tell you all about them, and we can go to the smith's AMONG THE FAULD FOLK. 75 as well. Mary will give you some cakes and milk. Then you will see wee Katie Menzies that I've told you about so often. She's always at the smith's.' * Is she nicer than me ? ' asked Sheila soberly. 1 Sometimes,' answered Fergus, rather absently ; for they had crossed over the brig, and he was looking away over at Shounen, with a look of pain in his eyes which one so young ought not to have known. 'I don't think you're nice, anyway, Fergus,' said Sheila, in rather an aggrieved voice, as they turned up the road to the Fauld. ' You just fished and fished, and never spoke at all.' 4 1 was thinking, Sheila, said Fergus ; and he brushed his hand over his eyes as he looked to the long, low, white-washed kirk of Amulree. ' Sheila, what would you think if some day, when you were a big woman, you went into the kirk there, and Sandy M'Tavish brought up the Bible, and then opened the vestry door, and let in a new minister, not Mr. Macfarlane, and when you looked up it was me ? ' ' You I* Sheila stared with all her might, and then laughed right out. ' Oh, that would be funny I ' ' It might be funny for you, but it wouldn't be very funny for me,' said Fergus gloomily. ' My mother says that in Septem- ber, just when Uncle Graham and them are out on the hills all day, I have to go to Perth to the school, and learn to be a minister.' ' Oh, Fergus, what for? ' * She says, Sheila, that I must learn to do something, for I have no money; and that I must be a minister, because father was one, and it will be the best thing for me.' There was a catch in the boy's voice as he spoke, and Sheila's sweet eyes filled with tears of sympathy, though she only parti- ally understood it alL ' I'd rather dig peats all day, or be a gamekeeper like Lachlan Macrae, or break stones on the road, than go to be a minister, Sheila. I hate books and going to school.' ' But, Fergus, Uncle Graham has lots and lots of money. I'll ask him to give you money, and not let you go to be a minister, if you don't like it,' said Sheila confidently. 76 SHEILA. Fergus smiled sadly, remembering with what hot, stinging, unsparing words his mother had denounced Aunt Edith and her little girl, and how she had said they had stolen his birthright from him. She had said a great deal more, indeed, than Fergus understood but that point was quite plain to him. And yet it made no difference in his feeling to Sheila, who had become as necessary to his existence as light and sunshine was to Aunt Edith, who was enshrined like a saint in his boyish heart. Whatever his mother might say, he would never change towards them nor blame them in the least. They walked a little way in silqnce, until, ascending one of the gentle elevations in the road, they saw Achnafauld and the silvery loch beyond shimmering in the radiance of the summer sun. A mystic, exquisite purple glow lay on the encircling hills ; a long, dry, bright summer had ripened the heather, and made it bloom before its time. ' Oh, Fergus,' said Sheila, and she slipped her hand in his, ' isn't it sunny and nice ? Never mind. Perhaps your mother won't send you to be a minister yet.' Fergus smiled. The beautiful scene spread before his eyes, in all its grand solitude and peace, had its effect upon him, and soothed his vexed spirit. ' Yonder's a gig coming out of Auchloy, Sheila,' he said, point- ing with his rod to the clump of trees hiding the factor's residence. ' I see Puddin' M'Bean in it.' ' Why do .they call him Puddin' ? ' asked Sheila ; and Fergus laughed at her curious pronouncing of the word. Sheila had a pure English accent yet, though she had picked up a few High- land words in her intercourse with the servants and with Fergus. 4 Because he is so fat. His face is like a bannock all dabbed over with little holes, like Mary M'Glashan's scones,' said Fergus, with more force than elegance of diction ; and Sheila only laughed. Mr. M'Bean drove a high-stepping horse, and the light gig came rolling over the rough road at a splendid pace. ' Here's Lady Macleod's boy and the little girl from Dalmore, mistress,' said the factor to his wife, who was on the back of the gig. ' Take a good look at her.' AMONG THE FAULD FOLK, 77 Which Mrs. M'Bean certainly did, after the gig had passed the children, and the factor had duly saluted them. ' She's a dainty wee lass, Angus. The bairns are very friendly-like,' was her comment. ' Ay, that'll do i' the meantime,' said the factor significantly. ' Dalmore'll maybe come between them some day.' 4 1 don't like Puddin' M'Bean very much ; do you, Fergus ? ' asked Sheila, who, having been greatly interested in her com- panion's account of his exploits at the school, had been very anxious to see him. * I like him 1 I'd like to put him in the burn every day till he was all washed away,' said Fergus, who was addicted to the use of strong language, and had grown very combative of late. In fact, home influences were souring the sweet temper of the boy. Ellen Macleod had really no idea of the harm she was doing, and there was nobody honest enough or courageous enough to tell her. Macdonald, after that one futile morning call, had indeed let her severely alone, but whenever he had opportunity he heaped kind words and gifts on the boy, for his heart was sore for him. Hand in hand the pair passed on, and turned down the first beaten path into Achnafauld. Fergus chose this way because he wanted to show Sheila the pool in the burn where Puddin' M'Bean had got his 'dookin';' and there he had to help her over the stepping-stones, which were nearly dry with the long drought. It was past six o'clock, and the busy clang of the anvil was at rest and the smithy empty. Fergus hoped Donald would have his supper, and that he would be smoking by the side of the peat fire, for it was then, when his own pipe smoke went curling up in beautiful unison with the peat reek, that Donald was apt to glide into his most talkative and delightful moods. In all her wanderings with Fergus during the long days of summer, Sheila had never been in the Fauld before, nor within any of the cottars' dwellings. She opened her big brown eyes very wide as she followed Fergus through the low narrow door into the kitchen, the floor of which was white and the roof black, the rafters having been varnished with the peat reek of genera- tions. The kitchen was the whole width of the house, and there 78 SHEILA. was a tiny window not much bigger than a port-hole, both to back and front. Then, just behind the door, there was the queerest, quaintest fire-place Sheila had ever seen in her life ; just a handful of peats burning among soft brown ash on two big flat stones, and a kettle hanging on a chain above it, and singing with all its might. A shaggy tan-coloured collie lay at full length before the fire, with a cat and two kittens on its back. On the one side there was a kind of rude couch covered with a faded tartan plaid. In the big arm-chair, by the peat bin in the wall, sat the smith him- self, enjoying his evening pipe. He took it from his mouth when the children came in, and rose up to receive them, with a slow, pleased smile on his bronzed and rugged face. Sheila looked at him a little shyly, and kept close by Fergus's side, for the smith was a great big, uncouth-looking man, and the addition of an immense Scotch bonnet on his shaggy hair did not by any means soften the general outline. * An' this is the wee leddy from Dalmore ? Mary Macalpine, here's the gentry to see ye.' Mary came out of the adjoining room, with a motherly smile of welcome, and bade them sit down while she ran to get cakes and milk. ' We can't stay long,' Fergus exclaimed ; ' because we're going over to Rob Macnaughton's to hear about the mist-wraiths.' 'Humph,' said the smith, with a smile. 'Ye ha'e surely gotten round Rob's saft side. Does he no' lock ye oot ? ' * no, never,' said Fergus. ' I like Rob, and so will Sheila. Where's Katie ? She's mostly here, isn't she?' ' Ay ; but Jenny Menzies, thrawn crone ! has ta'en the gee, an* winna let the bairns come in. It was jealous she was of us wasn't she, Mary Macalpine ? because the bairns, puir things! liket our ingle neuk better nor her cauldrife hearth- stane. An' what are ye daein' wi' yersel' the noo, Maister Fergus?' ' Nothing. Fin going to be a minister, Donald ; and if you sleep in the kirk when I'm preaching I'll cry out to you,' said Fergus, with his mouth full of oatcake. 'A minister!' The smith lifted his hands into the air. AMONG THE FAULD FOLK. 79 ' As weel try to bridle the deer or cage the lark as pit goon an' bands upon you.' * Ay, for sure,' said Mary, stroking Sheila's soft brown curls with a very tender touch. 'I'd rather apprentice with you, Donald,' said Fergus, with a melancholy smile. ' Come then, Sheila. If we're going to Bob's, it's time we were away.' In a two-roomed house, near the roadside, dwelt Rob Mac- naughton, stocking -weaver and poet of Achnafauld. He was an unmarried man, and lived entirely by himself, not encouraging even his neighbours to disturb his solitude. He had a lame leg, and was not otherwise robust, though he was tall and powerfully built, and only in his prime. Fergus, with the fearless unconcern of childhood, went in and out all the Fauld houses, Rob's not excepted, and had taken kindly to the morose, strange being, who was not a favourite in the Fauld, because he was not understood. As Donald had said, Fergus had got round the stocking-weaver, who would regale him by the hour with old legends, which were too weird and fearsome to have any foundation except in his own brain. Hand in hand, then, the bairns went through the clachan, and, without ceremony, entered Rob Macnaughton's door. The loom was silent, and Rob himself was in the kitchen, sitting at the table, with an old copy-book before him and a quill pen behind his ear. He looked round in no well pleased way when he heard the sneck lifted ; but his face cleared at sight of the bairns, and he rose to welcome them at once. Sheila tightened her hold on the hand of Fergus as she looked at the big, loose figure, with the thin, embrowned, withered-look- ing face and the straggling grey beard and shaggy brows, beneath which there gleamed a pair of deep, flashing, penetrating eyes. ' I have brought a lady to see you, Rob, and to hear about the mist - wraiths,' said Fergus, as he closed the door. 'And you must 4ell every word of it, to the very end.' ' Is this the sunbeam frae Dalmore ? ' inquired Rob, with 8o SHEILA. a strange softening of his rugged features. ' You are wel- come, luach machree.' Sheila was reassured by that smile. There is no fear in childhood until it is implanted there by others. Rob placed chairs for them round the fire, and sat down himself ; but Sheila planted herself by his side, and looked wonderingly and questioningly into his face. ' Tell us a story,' she said, patting his hard knuckles with her little soft hand. That touch sent a thrill through the poet's soul. ' I'll sing ye a song, machree/ he said half dreamily. * I was but at it when you carne in.* And, half closing his eyes, and laying one hand softly on the bright head of the child at his knee, Rob began to chant, in a low, musical voice, his own Gaelic, the sound of which kept both the children spell-bound. It was a pretty picture, rendered more so that they were all so unconscious of it. This was what Rob sang : MOLADH QHLEANN CUAICH. LE IAIN MAONEACHDAINN. Glean nan caorach, Gleanna cuaich nan cruaidh louch, Cha'n eil leithid ri fhaotainn an taobh so d'on Fhraing. Tha fhalluing co priseil, barr fraoich 'a bun cioba, Is neconan is millse mu d'chrichibh 's gach am Tha fallaineachd mhor anns a ghleannan bheag bhoidheach, Tha ni agus etoras ann a d'choir anns gach am ; Tha sithionn an aonich 'a iasgach a chaolais Gu bailt ann ri fhaotainn 'us cho saor ris a bhum, Tha leath-chearc 'us smndan agus coilech an dunain, Boo maoisich gu luth'or a auibhal nam beann ; Tha chaug 's na smeorach 'a na badanaibh boidheach Fo fhasga na Sroina seinn ceol air gach crann, Tha ruadh-bhuic 'us maoisich 'us eildinn le'n laoigh ann, Daimh chabracli sraonach air aodainn nan torn, 'S an earbag bheag laoghach bhios a comhnuidh 'a an doire 'S coin bhachlach bheag loaghach le'n ceileerebh binn. Tha tarmain 'a soin rnadha us lachidh chinn-uain ann, Maigheach ghlaa a cheum nallach gach nar anns a Ghlean, AMONG THE FAULD FOLK. 81 Na codal gu guamach 's na laganaibh naigneach Am fasga na luachrich na cuirteag gle chruinn. 'Miair tbig oirnn an Luinasd's am direadh nan stucaibb, Bidh lamhacbd air fudar 'a luaidh dhu-ghorm na deann, Aig morearaibh 's aig Duicaibh, le'n cuilbheara dubailt, B'e an aighair's an sugradh tigbinn deu ort 's gacb am. Tha toilinntinn ri fha jn ma d'gblacaibb tha faoilidb, Gar am biodh ach Loch Fraochidh na aonaran ann ; 'S trio bba m le'm dhriamlaich 's le'm cbulae bbeag riabacli. '8 mo ghad air a lionadh le iasgaibb nan lann. Tba thu creaganacb, sronach, feadanach, boidheach, Tha tha bileagacb, foirleanacb, romach, glan, grinn ; Gu dearcagach, broileagach, smeuragach, oireagach, 'S gach meas bu roighneach ana coilltibh a cinn. Cha'n fhaigbt am folach aon am an a d'choirsa Ach muinean do'n choineach bu nosar glan grinn : Fraoch comhdach nan sleibbtean fo blathas mios a chestein. Is mil as ag eiridh mar eirthuinn nan torn. Tha'n abhainn gu brighor a tearnadh gun sigios oirr, Air leabaidh do'n phebble na sin ad cbom, Dol seachad na lubaibb gun smalan gun smuir oirr, IB i ceadach am shuileabh mar shuicar glan pronn. Struth fiorglilan mar chriostal leara 's miann bhi ga fbaicinn, Mar fhion-dearg tha bhlas domli 's tu carach gu grinn, 'S tu sruthan is boidhche tha'n taobh so do'n Jordan, '8 ged theirinn cha bu sgleo-uisge mor Amazon. Tba an cala ro phriseil-leam 's ait bbi ga innseadh, Gu Bocrach na sineadn air dilinn nan tonn ; Gu ma maireann na daoine, cbosd ruit am maoine, Dheanamh tioram a cbaolais do gach aon tha san-flonn. Tha Brnthan glan crasbbach a Gleannlochan a taomadh, Chumas biadh agus aodach ris gach aon tba san duthaicb, Le innsraniaide grinne-mnillean cardaidb 'us mine Cha'n eil aicheadh 'a a chruinne le sireadh gu cul, Tha do gbibhtean do aireamh, aig a mhiad, is a dh 'fhas iad, On am san robh ADI am braig cuig-punnt, Is tu 's aileagan dhuinne thar gach ait anns a chruinne, Chaidh ar 'n arach aunt uile, is c'um nach molamaid thu. [The foregoing song was composed by John Macnaughton, Achnafauld, Glenquaich, who died in the year 1866, aged 85. The following is a trans lation by A. O. : ] 6 83 SHEILA. PRAISE OF GLENQUAICH. Glen where the sheep are, Glenquaich, where live brave, hardy heroei, Thine equal is not to be found on this side of France. Thy mantle's so precious of heather and mountain grass, With daisies so lovely abounding at all times. There is excellent health in that beautiful little glen, And cattle and riches are to be found in thy precincts. Venison off the hills, and fish from the loch, Are to be found in abundance, and as free as the water. Grey-hens and wild pigeons and grouse from the moors, And roebucks so agile roam over the hills ; The cuckoo and mavis in the beautiful woodlands, In the shelter of the mountains, sing music on each bow. The red-deer and doe, with their frisky young offspring, And the stately antlered deer on the brow of the hill ; And the beautiful roes are at home in the thicket, Where the blithe feathered songsters are singing so sweetly. There are ptarmigan and grouse, and blue-headed wild ducks, And the white hare with her proud step is to be found on the hill, Sleeping securely in the seclusion of the hollow, Cuddled up very snugly, quite near to the rushes. When Lammas has come, and grouse-shooting begins. Lords and dukes with their double-barrelled guns Get a plenteous supply of powder and shot, And their joy and their sport is to come to the Glen. Delightful enjoyment's to be found in thy valley, Though there was but only Loch Fraochie there. Oft with my line and a little brown fly Have I filled my withe with the beautiful trout. Thou art craggy and rugged, with thy beautiful brooks ; Herbaceous, extensive, rough, but right clean. Blae, wortle, bramble, and cloud berries, The choicest of fruits will grow in the Glen. Bank foggage will never be found on thy hills, But mountain grass and moss in the beautiful dells. Luxuriant heather grows on every moor, And the fragrance of honey is conveyed by the breeze. Untiringly flows the substantial river In its channel, a bed of the cleanest of pebbles, Winding cheerily on, free of mud and of dust, More precious in my eyes than the sweetest sugar AMONG THE FAULD FOLK. Thy clear stream, like crystal, I love well to see ; Sweeter than red wine to me is thy taste. Thou'rt a lovelier stream by far than the Jordan, And no lie, though I say it, than the great Amazon. The graceful swan I am proud to declare it Is quietly reposing on thy watery wave. May those generous men flourish who gave so much money To bridge over the river for all in the Glen. A tributary stream from Glenlochan comes foaming, Which keeps food and clothing to each one in the place By the excellent machinery in the meal and wool mills. v No better than these can be found anywhere. Thy gifts without number to all who will take them Since that time that Adam lived up in the Glen. Thou'rt a jewel more precious than all in the world Why should we not praise thee, who nurtured us all? CHAPTER IX. THE SHADOW OF DEATH. O Love J who bewailest The frailty of all things well, Why ch >ose you the frailest For your cradle, your home, and your bier? SHELLEY. P and down, to and fro the dining-room of Dalmore, strode Macdonald one August evening, and he had the appearance of a man in the keen throes of mental anguish. His brows were knit, and he clasped and unclasped his hands with a nervous haste as he paused now and again to listen with strained ear for any sound to come from Tipstairs. In the upper room, his wife, the darling of his heart, lay between life and death. Another hour, the physician had said, would decide the issue. He seemed to have been enduring this agonizing strain for hours; in reality, it was only minutes. They had sent him down. The doctor had implored him to stay in the dining-room ; for his restless, hurried pacing up and down the corridor was disturbing the sick-room. He had obeyed immediately. All he could do to help was to keep out of the way; but oh, they seemed careless, indifferent to his agony, though it was the light of his life who was in such fearful peril. He heard a foot on the stair at length, and sprang to the door. The doctor, a grave, middle- aged man, of eminent skill, who had come all the way from THE SHADO W OF DBA TH. 85 Edinburgh to attend at this crisis, motioned him to be silent, and, entering the room, shut the door. ' It is over,' he said briefly ; ' the child is dead.' ' What is the child to me ? How is my wife ? ' 'She cannot live,' said the doctor briefly, and, turning his head away, strode over to the window, and stood with his back to the man, not caring to look upon his anguish. ' Not live 1 Why not ? ' cried Macdonald. ' What use are you if you can do nothing for her ? ' 'Mr. Macdonald,' said the physician gravely, almost sadly, ' we can only do what we can. We cannot work miracles. Nothing short of a miracle could save your wife's life.' Macdonald groaned aloud. The doctor was amazed to see such evidence of devoted love. He had not been greatly pre- possessed in favour of this rough Highland laird in the hours of the last evening which he had spent in his company. He had, indeed, wondered in what curious way he had wooed and won so sweet a wife. But there was no doubt about the genuineness of the man's anguish. It was searing itself into every feature. 'Nothing can be done? ' he said, calming himself by an effort, and speaking in a tone of anxious inquiry. ' Nothing. The strength is completely gone. Mrs. Macdonald has never been a very robust woman. No constitution to fall back upon.' Such was the brief, callous explanation of the whole matter as viewed in the light of medical skill. Macdonald received it in silence. ' How long ' He stopped short, unable to frame the question his eyes dumbly asked. ' Not long. You had better go up. She has asked for you several times.' Without a word, Macdonald turned and marched out of the room. Then the physician stretched himself on the couch and shut his eyes. He had been up all night, and his work was done. He was not a heartless man ; but he had never married, and could not understand a husband's feelings. He .was, indeed, rather sceptical about them, as a rule. 86 SHEILA. The Laird met Anne, Sheila's nurse-girl, on the stair. She was crying, with her apron at her eyes. He passed her by without a word, and strode on to the large, wide bed-chamber, with the long windows looking over to Amulree, where his wife had laid her down to die. The nurse heard his heavy foot in the corridor, and passed out as he went in. She only slipped into the adjoining room, to be at hand if required. Macdonnld only saw one gleam of the perfectly colourless face on the white pillows, and, staggering blindly across the room, he fell on his knees at the bed-side and buried his face on his arms. His action shook the whole bed, and his wife opened her eyes. Then her hand went forth very feebly, for her strength was spent, and, reaching his head, lay there content. In his deep, terrible agony, he was un- conscious of that light, loving touch. ' Graham/ she said at last, in a voiceless whisper, ' Graham, look up ; there are some things to say. 1 He flung up his head, and his eyes dwelt upon her face lovingly, yearningly, with a look which might have drawn her back to life and health. It told of intense, undying, unutterable love. She had all his affection, for until he met her it had been lavished on none. Ellen Macleod was his only living relative, and she had not sought or won any of his love. ' It is to be a fearful trial, Graham,' whispered the dying wife feebly. ' Try to bear it. We have been so happy. I I thank you for all' ' Hush, hush, Edith ! don't torture me ! ' he cried hoarsely. ' I have only known what life is since you came to Dalrnore. Oh, wife, live live for my sake!' ' I would if I could,' she whispered, and her faint smile was very sweet. ' But I must go. We cannot understand. Some day it will be made plain, and it is not for ever.' Her hopeful words found no echo in his heart. Ah ! in death's dark hour it is not easy to find comfort, even in a living hope. It sometimes seems as if our day had set in utter darkness. The silence which followed was broken by the hasty patter of small feet in the corridor; the door was opened by a quick. THE SHADO W OF DEA TH. 87 impulsive hand, and Sheila, with a quick, sobbing cry, sprang upon the bed. ' Oh, mamma, mamma 1 they would not let me come I ' she cried, as if her little heart would break. ' What is it? you are so white. Are you very ill, dear mamma? Is that why papa is crying ? ' The mother had no strength to reply. With a last effort, she lifted the child's hand and tried to place it round Mac- donald's neck. 'Kiss mamma, darling. Be good, love God, and care for papa,' she whispered slowly and with difficulty. * Graham, take care of Sheila, and don't let Ellen Macleod come near her.' Even in death the shadow Ellen Macleod had cast on Edith's married life lay chilly on her heart. Macdonald heard these words as in a dream. He seemed to know no more until they told him gently his wife was dead. Then he became conscious of a childish hand clinging tearfully about his neck, and, gathering himself up, he took the child to his heart, and turned away from the room without a backward glance. Ellen Macleod was sitting at the drawing-room window at Shonnen, busy, as usual, with some knitting. On the little grassy slope before the house Fergus was lying at full length, with Colin beside him. Colin divided his time between Dalmore and Shonnen. To him it had appeared at first an extraordinary thing why the family should be separated. The dog really belonged to Fergus, his uncle having given him to the boy when he brought him home, a prize puppy, one day from the show at Inverness. But Ellen Macleod had declined to give him house-room at Shonnen; so Colin slept at Dalmore, and only visited the Lodge when he wearied for a sight of his young master. Fergus had an open book before him, but his thoughts were far enough from study. He was thinking that it wanted but two days to the ' Twelfth,' and wondering whether Uncle Graham would let him handle a gun this year, as he had promised. It was life to him to be out of doors. Do what 88 SHEILA. they would, they would never make a student of him. Ellen Macleod knew this right well, but the knowledge did not make her waver in her decision. An heir was expected at Dalmore, so her last hope was extinguished. ' Fergus, isn't that Jessie Mackenzie running up the road ? ' she asked, putting her head out of the open window, and pointing along towards Amulree. 'Yes, mother ; what's she flying like that for? ' asked Fergus, turning on his side, and shading his eyes from the glow of the sunset. ' I can't tell ; it is most extraordinary. She only went an errand to the inn for me.' They were not long kept in suspense. The girl came hurry ing up to the Lodge, in by the back entrance, and straight to the dining-room door, and opened it without knocking. Through the open window Fergus heard quite plainly every word she spoke. ' Oh, ma'am, Mrs. Macdonald's dead 1 ' 'What?' Ellen Macleod sprang to her feet, and her face flushed all over. ' Quite true, ma'am ; at twenty minutes past six ; an' the baby, a son, is dead too. Oh 1 oh ! what a day for Dalmore I * and the warm-hearted girl wrung her hands in token of her distress. ' Jessie Mackenzie, the thing is impossible I Mrs. Macdonald was alive and well, out in the garden, I was told, no later than yesterday.' ' Ah, but that's not to say she's alive this day. Oh, it's too true, ma'am. Word came down from Dalmore to Macpherson, and he's driving the doctor in to Dunkeld to catch the train.' ' Dead 1 ' Ellen Macleod turned away, and, approaching the open window, stood there in stony silence. She saw Fergus, with Colin at his heels, already crossing the Braan by the stepping-stones he had rolled down himself before the Lodge to make a quick cut to Dalmore. She knew where the boy was going. She pictured him even entering the house, while she repeated to herself the one word dead I The woman who had supplanted her had not long enjoyed the place she had usurped. THE SHADOW OF DEATH. 89 Dead ! That bright, sweet, gracious woman, whose girlish beauty had made many wonder at Macdonald's luck. Dead ! It was an awful thought. Her hard, proud mouth quivered, not with grief, for she felt none, but with the sheer violence of the physical and mental shock. Meanwhile, Fergus was run- ning with all his might up to Dalmore. There was nobody about the outhouses, and when he got round to the front entrance he found the door wide open. As he stepped into the hall he was struck by the strange brooding silence in the house. He started when the clock struck eight. Colin had his tail between his legs, and was suspiciously sniffing the air. Suddenly, without any warning, he gave vent to a long, mournful howl, which made Fergus shiver, and brought two servants hurrying up from the kitchen to see what it meant. 'It's only Colin, Christina,' said the boy, with a faint, sickly smile ; and, taking him by the collar, he dragged him out to the stable and shut him in. ' Is it true that my uncle's wife is dead, Hamish ? ' he asked the stable-boy, who was lounging at the coach-house door with his hands in his pockets. Hamish nodded stolidly ; and Fergus went away round to the front door again, and entered the house. He did not know what he wanted, or what made him stay. He could not believe that Aunt Edith, who only a few days ago had stopped her carriage on the road to lean out and kiss him, could be lying cold and still, as he remembered seeing his father lie at the manse of Meiklemore. He wanted to see his Uncle Graham or Sheila, just to make sure that this terrible thing had really happened. He looked into the dining-room, but it was empty. The door of his uncle's own room on the opposite side of the corridor was wide open, and there was nobody in it. With noiseless step and bated breath, Fergus crept upstairs to the drawing-room. He heard the sound of whispering voices and hurrying feet on the upper floor, but nobody came to disturb him. The drawing-room door was a little ajar, and when he looked in, he saw crouched up on the deerskin rug a little figure in a crumpled white frock. It was Sheila, poor motherless Iambi fast asleep, with the big tears lying wet on her white 90 SHEILA. cheeks, and fringing her long brown lashes. It was past her bed-time, but they had forgotten all about her ; while she, poor child 1 had forgotten her sorrow in the deep slumber of childhood. A lump rose in the boy's throat, and he turned away. Not given much to tears, his eyes were full at sight of Sheila. Just as he slipped away downstairs, he met Mrs. Cameron, the housekeeper, who looked surprised to see him. ' Where have ye come from, Maister Fergus ? ' she asked, in a whisper. ' This is a sad, sad day for Dahnore. Will you come up and see our sweet leddy ? She's like a angel in her sleep.' The boy shivered, but there was a fascination in the thought. He could not really believe that Aunt Edith was dead unless his own eyes convinced him. So he nodded, and followed the housekeeper upstairs once more. Their work was done in the chamber of death. Loving hands had per- formed the last service on earth for the beloved mistress of Dalmore, and when Fergus stole softly, fearfully almost, into the room behind the servant, he was conscious of a curious peace which fell upon him. The blinds were drawn, but the sunshine she had loved stole through, and made a mellow radiance in the room. They had removed from the room everything which could suggest the brief, sharp struggle which had snapped the thread of life, and there she lay, white, calm, peaceful, with her hands folded, and a sprig of white heather on her breast. The face was uncovered, and it seemed to Fergus that she looked as if she had been asleep ; there was even a faint smile on the sweet mouth. She had left a blessed memory behind, even in the heart of the boy to whom her smile and her motherly kindness had been like the wine of life. If Ellen Macleod had but known what was passing in her son's heart at that moment, she would have been jealous of her rival even in death. But that was a tiling Fergus Macleod never spoke of until years after, and it was to one who shared with him the regret that a life so precious should have been so prematurely ended. 'That will do, thank you, Mrs. Cameron,' he said gently 'Would you let me have a bit of that heather just to keep, that httic bit touching her hand ? ' THE SHAD OW OF DEA TH. 9 1 The housekeeper sobbed aloud, as, with reverent hand, she broke the little spray from the stem and gave it into the boy's hand. His grief was not noisy, but she saw that it was profound. As Fergus Macleod went downstairs he kissed the sprig of white heather, and in that kiss a vow was hid. What it was we may not yet know, but it made a man of our hero, and filled him with a manly resolve. He did not go back to the drawing-room. Young though he was, he felt that sleep was merciful to Sheila. There would be plenty of time to-morrow for her to cry her heart out anew for what she had lost. The sun had set when he went out of doors again, and the sky beyond Glenquaich was a wonder of glorious loveliness. There seemed to be a solemn hush in the air, but there was nothing sad or melancholy to add to the natural grief. Nay, it was as if the Angel of Death, in his swift passage, had left an abiding peace on Dalmore. Fergus went to the stable for Colin, and turned his face down the hill. But the dog would not follow. He rushed to and fro, whining uneasily, and finally set off round by the stable and up through the firs towards the crest of Crom Creagh. Fergus had the curiosity to follow him, not being in any special hurry to go back to Shonnen. He felt, though he could not express or understand it, that his mother would break the spell of peace which lingered about Dalmore, and that she would fret him and make him miserable about his aunt. He was only a child, but experience was teaching him. He had visions and percep- tions far beyond his years. He could even weigh motives in the balance, and discriminate between right and wrong, justice and injustice with marvellous precision. God's spirit touched his heart. But for the wholesome influence of Sheila and her Christian mother, he must have grown up an unnatural, unlove- able being. For Sheila was his guardian angel. Her gentle spirit, so pure and sensitive to every thing rude, held his in re- straint. Often did he hear from her lips the Gospel lessons which she learned from, her mother, and these helped him. Following on, with glowing heart, after fleet-footed Colin, Fergus came upor a sight Which made him. suddenly burst into tears. There wa? the solitary figure of his Uncle Graham, sitting under the 9 * SHEILA. frowning crest of Crom Creagh, with his head deep buried in his hands, fighting his lone, silent battle where no eye but God's could see him. But the faithful dog, with a keenness of intuition which seemed more than instinct, had found him out, and now lay at his feet with his head on his knees, whining piteously, with his almost human eyes fixed upon the bowed head. Fergus crept up to his uncle's side, laid his arm round his neck, and whispered brokenly, 'Oh, Uncle Graham, don't cry! We shall see Aunt Edith again.' A shudder ran through Graham Macdonald's stalwart frame, and a deep groan escaped his lips. He moved his hand, and it touched Colin's head. He never spoke, but patted the faithful collie, and then looked up at Fergus with a strange, melancholy smile. ' Ay, Fergus lad,' was all he said ; and then his eye wandered away beyond the roof of Dalmore to the sweet valley of Glen- quaich, where the loch lay gemmed with the ruddy blush of the sunset on its breast. It was a picture she had loved, and never again would her eyes rest upon it. It had lost its beauty for him. From that day the world was a changed world for Macdonald of Dalmore. CHAPTER X. ESTRANGED. Go 1 Darken not, by alien voice and look, The place made sacred by her memory I T was all over. The Lady of Dalmore had been borne to her rest at Shiiin by the strong arms of those who loved her, and laid down on the green hillside within sight of the silver loch, while Blind Rob's pipes played the mournful notes of 'The Land o' the Leal.' It was a great gathering a 'beautifu' buryin',' the Fauld wives said to each other, as they sobbed over the untimely end of the sweet Lady of Dalmore. It was as if nature mourned with her human creatures, for a dreary, wet mist hung low over mountain, moor, and loch, like a pall. And when it was all over, Graham Macdonald went back to his dreary home, where a white-faced child in a black frock was wandering desolately through the house, crying for the mother that would never come again. From the upper window at Shonnen, Ellen Macleod watched the funeral train leave Dalrnore and wend its way along by the Achnafauld road towards Shian. But the intervening distance was too wide to permit her to distinguish the different carriages and equipages which made up the long, imposing train. It was a gr&at gathering, for even in the few short months Edith 94 SHEILA. Macdonald had reigned in Dalmore she had made for herself many friends. Fergus was very wet when he returned to Shonnen late in the afternoon, for the mist- wraiths had drooped their wings lower and lower, until they too dropped tears for the Lady of Dalmore. After he had changed his dress and come to the dining-room, his mother found him absent and uncommunicative. ' It was a great burying, Fergus,' she said. * I could not make out the coaches. Who were all there?* ' I don't know, mother. It was a great crowd.' ' Who let down the coffin, then ? You can surely tell that.' ' Uncle Graham at the head, mother, and I was at the foot, beside Sir Douglas Murray. Lord Dunloch was at one side, and General Macpherson at the other. I don't know the rest.' ' What ministers had you at the house ? ' *I don't know them, mother, except Mr. Macfarlane. There were others there, I think,' said the boy wearily, for the questioning hurt him. He had been sufficiently saddened by the event of the day. He could not bear to discuss every trifling element in it, as his mother evidently desired. She was consumed with curiosity had, indeed, felt a kind of surprised chagrin at the great turn-out of well-known people at her sister-in-law's burying. * Were there any ladies at the house ? ' * Only Lady Ailsa Murray.' * Did you hear anything about any arrangements ? Is the little girl to go to Murrayshaugh ? ' ' Sheila ? Oh, I don't think so. I hope not,' said Fergus quickly. ' Uncle Graham won't let her, I am sure. She sat on his knee all the time of the service in the dining- room.' Dinner was served just then, and the subject was laid aside. But Ellen Macleod pondered certain things in her mind for the rest of that day. The violence of the shock the sudden death had given her had worn off, and she had felt a strange ESTRANGED. 95 thrill that very afternoon when the funeral train passed by ; for the interloper was gone, and there was nothing now to stand between Fergus Macleod and Dalmore. She had already settled in her own mind that the child Sheila would return to the Hurrays ; for of course she had not the shadow of a claim to expect a home at Dalmore. And, after a time, when the way was smoothed, and past differences between her brother and herself healed by a little diplomacy on her part, she pictured herself and Fergus reinstalled at Dalmore. It had been a trial of no ordinary kind for her proud spirit to stoop to the obscurity of Shonnen Lodge. She had not spoken to Macdonald for months, but she had no doubt that he would feel the need of her help at this crisis. Between the death and the burying, however, no message had come from Dalmore not even a formal notification of the event neither was she asked up to the house for the service of the funeral day. She knew that Lady Ailsa had come up the day after Mrs. Macdonald's death, and had not returned to Murrayshaugh. So she attributed the lack of attention shown to herself to the officious interference of Lady Murray, and resolved to bide her time until Dalmore should be restored to solitude. A few more days passed by, and as no message came from Dalmore, Ellen Macleod made up her mind to go up and find out for herself how matters stood. She had no means of knowing whether her brother was alone, or whether Lady Murray still remained, and her curiosity could no longer be restrained. Fergus had gone off for a long day's fishing on the loch ; so, early in the afternoon, Ellen Macleod. left Shonnen, and, crossing over by Fergus's stepping-stones, walked slowly up to Dalmore. She had not crossed the Girron Brig for eleven months, since the day she had left Dalmore, a week before her brother's marriage. She was not a sentimental woman, and she felt no thrill of feeling as she entered upon the familiar carriage-way. Her interest in Dalmore was of a very practical kind, chiefly made up of pride and greed. But she did think, when she reached the tableland and turned 96 SHEILA. into the avenue gate, that the place had never looked so bonnie. It had never been kept in such condition in her day. There was not a weed nor a bare spot on the smooth gravel, and the turf was closely shaven, and looked like finest velvet. Edith had planted some Dijon rose-trees before the door, and they had taken kindly to the soil, and were covered with bloom and bud. On either side of the door were two huge terra-cotta vases filled with white heather, a mass of delicate bloom. Wherever Edith Macdonald was, she gathered pretty things about her, and she had loved her new home with a loving pride, and found delight in its adornment. As for Macdonald, though he did not understand all she did, he knew that never had the house been so pleasant to live in. Ah 1 it had been blessed by the sunshine of a sweet woman's presence only long enough to make the desolation more awful to bear. These frivolities about the outside of Dalmore did not please Ellen Macleod. ' Any cottar can cover his walls with roses,' she said to herself, thinking they detracted from the dignity of Dalmore. She hesitated at the open door, not knowing why she should hesitate. Her hand even was on the bell to announce her presence ; but, with a short laugh, she hastily recovered herself, and walked in. Why should she crave admission to Dalmore ? She knew where she would be likely to find her brother, but she elected to seek her way to the drawing-room, possibly to see what changes the new wife had wrought there. She scarcely knew the room, though the furnishings were the same ; but the things were all shifted from the places they had occupied for a hundred years or more, and there were some pert, new-fangled little chairs and tables standing in every odd corner, and so many plants and cut flowers that it was more like a greenhouse than the sober reception-room at Dalmore. The faded moreen curtains were all removed from the windows, and in their place hangings of some dainty Indian muslin, tied back with broad bands of bright yellow ribbon, swayed to and fro in the gentle autumn wind. But, worst of all, there was a fine new piano, a semi- grand, with a beautifully inlaid ebony case, open, as the poor ESTRANGED. 97 lady had left it, with her music scattered about, and a piece even on the rack above the keys. Ellen Macleod had the curiosity to go forward and look at the maker's name, and when she saw it was an Erard she frowned, knowing what it must have cost. ' Oh, what a fool he must have been, when he allowed all this I ' she muttered to herself, as she took a final survey of the room ere she left it, though she did not know it, for the last time. ' I'll sweep away all that flimsy nonsense, and send back the plants to their proper place. I hope she hasn't torn up the good moreen curtains, that cost a guinea a yard if they cost a penny.' She drew the door behind her, and, sweeping majestically downstairs, made her way to the library door. In the hall Anne Ross met her, and stared in blank amaze- ment. But Mrs. Macleod, without deigning to notice her, turned the door-handle of the library door, and marched in. Macdonald was sitting at his escritoire, with his back to the door. At the first glance his sister was struck by his bent shoulders and the greyness of his hair. From behind he looked like an old man. She had advanced into the room before he turned his head. When he did look round, he rose at once, pushed his chair to one side, and looked her straight in the face. There was neither recognition nor friendliness in that look. * Well,' he said curtly, 'what do you want?' The brief, keen question, the icy coldness of his manner, and the flash in his deep-set eye, were slightly disconcerting to Ellen MacJeod, though she was not a timid woman. 'You needn't snap my head off, Macdonald,' she said, with admirable coolness, and sitting down as she spoke. ' I've come to talk matters over with you.' 'What matters?' ' Family affairs, of course. I was sorry to hear of your loss, though you may not believe it.' A slight, very slight, smile, which had nothing pleasant in it, 7 98 SHEILA. curled Macdonald's straight upper lip. It was all the answer or thanks she received. * I have no family affairs to discuss with you, Ellen,' he said briefly. ' So you have had your walk in vain.' ' You have not been very civil to me at this time, Macdonald,' said Ellen Macleod, determined to take a high hand or none. ' I say nothing about not receiving any notice of the event, or about the slight put upon me by your asking a stranger to dispense your hospitalities at this time. I have nothing against Lady Murray ; I know her to be a kind friend both in sickness and health ; but whatever difference was between us, Macdonald, my place was to be at Dalmore on Friday.' Macdonald's brow darkened, his lips twitched, and his nostrils dilated with the passion he was trying to hold and curb. It was her memory which helped him in this moment of keen trial. ' Ellen,' he said, and his voice shook with the very violence of the effort he was making to restrain his anger, 'I wish to have no words with you, and I cannot conceive for what reason you should have forced yourself upon me at this time. You had better go quickly away back to Shonnen. I am quite capable of managing my own affairs without your interference.' But Ellen Macleod had no such intention. She had been so accustomed in the past to her brother's fits of anger and to his use of strong language, that his moderate speech and apparent calmness completely deceived her. 'I don't want to interfere with your management of your affairs. I only want to know something of your plans. I suppose the child will go back to the Murrays?' What child?' 'Your wife's, the little girl Murray. Her father's people will be going to take her ? ' What is that to you? ' ' Oh, nothing much, of course. If you are going to keep her for a while, of course I have no business, and I'll do my duty by her.' ESTRANGED. 99 You will?' 'Yes. Don't be a fool, Macdonald. You cannot be con- templating anything so absurd as to live here alone when I am alone at Shonnen. The sooner we slip back into the old way the better. It will be in your interest as well as mine.' 'I am very much obliged to you, but it will be better for us both, now that we are apart, to keep so,' he said quietly, though he was tempted to express himself much more strongly. 'If any good feeling has prompted you to come here to-day, I thank you for it, and I wish you good-day.' Ellen Macleod rose to her feet. Amazement, indignation, incredulity possessed her. ' Do you mean to say I am not to come back to Dalmore, Macdonald ; that the place is to be at the rnercy of servants ? You don't know what you are doing. They'll devour your substance, and rob you right and left. Have you taken leave of your senses ? ' ' No, but you evidently have/ he said angrily. ' Do you know, that for you to come here after after all that is past ' (he dared not mention his wife's name), ' expecting to be even civilly spoken to, is a height of presumption I scarcely imagined even you to be capable of? While I am in my right mind, Ellen Macleod, you shall never enter this house as resident or guest, though you are my sister. You have never acted a sister's part to me.* Ellen Macleod's long thin lips grew pale with passion. Her hot Highland blood was up. She positively glared at the cold, calm countenance of her brother, as if she could have slain him where he stood. ' So this is what Edith Murray, with her sneaking ways, has done ? I shall be hearing next that Dalmore is to go to her child' ' Hold your tongue I How dare you take that name on your lips?' thundered Macdonald, his face purple with righteous anger, his eyes flashing, and the veins on his forehead standing out like knotted cords. ' The place she sanctified, and made a home such as it never was, and never will ioo SHEILA. be again, is desecrated with your presence. Get out of my sight, woman! lest I forget myself, and lift my hand against you.' 4 Well, I go, but I leave my curse upon you and Dalmore I ' she almost screamed ; for her anger had risen to white heat, and, gathering her skirts in her hand, she swept out of the room. As she slammed the door after her, a thrill of childish laughter came in through the open door, and, as she stepped into the hall, Sheila, with her hands full of wild flowers, came dancing in. She stopped short at sight of the tall, dark-browed woman, sweeping like a Nemesis through the hall. At sight of the sweet, innocent baby face uplifted in wonder upon her, an evil spirit seemed to enter into Ellen Macleod, and, lifting her hand, she gave the child a blow on her bare white shoulder, which made her scream out in terror and pain. Aunt Ailsa, who had been up Crom Creagh with her little pet, and had but lingered at the door to pick some dead buds from Edith's rose-trees, appeared in the doorway, and saw the act. 'May God forgive you, Ellen Macleod 1 ' she said, her fair face flushing in shame and anger. 'You are a cruel, wicked woman 1 * Then she sprang forward, and gathered the bairn close to her sweet, motherly breast, and pressed her loving lips to the red mark Ellen Macleod's cruel hand had made. Macdonald heard the scream, and came out into the hall just as Lady Ailsa had lifted Sheila in her arms. * What is it ? ' he asked ; and at sound of her father's voice Sheila raised her tearful face, and pointed to her arm. ' Oh, papa I a black woman struck me. I am so frightened.' Macdonald took the child in his arms, and bent his dark face OVCT her. Ailsa Murray saw that his features were still work- ing convulsively, and that he seemed under the influence of strong feeling. She surmised that a stormy interview had just passed between the brother and sister, but her delicacy pre- vented her alluding to it. Macdonald himself broke the awkward silence. * Edith bade me keep the bairn away from Ellen Macleod ESTRANGED. 101 Ailsa,* he said ; ' and, God knows, she had need. She is a fearful woman.' Lady Ailsa sighed, and followed Macdonald to the library. The occurrence had made an opportunity for her to speak concerning Sheila's future. ' It is time I was home, Macdonald. My boys are wearying for me and for Sheila. She is expected at Murrayshaugh.' 'Is she?' Lady Ailsa fancied Macdonald's arms tightened round the child, who clung to him with a confidence which had no fear in it. ' Sir Douglas and I have discussed the matter. We will adopt Sheila, and you know she will be like our own.' '^fou are very kind, but Sheila belongs to me.' Lady Ailsa looked a little put out. ' If there is any chance of your sister coming even occasionally to Dalmore, I am afraid I must insist on taking Sheila away,' she said firmly. ' I can- not have her subjected to that.' 'You need not be afraid. Ellen Macleod has set foot for the last time in Dalmore. Edith left the child to me, but if it will please you better, Sheila herself shall decide.' He sat down, and placed Sheila on his knee. She was not much hurt, and her sobbing had ceased. ' Listen to me, bairn,' he said. ' Aunt Ailsa is going away home, and she wants to take you away to Murrayshaugh to live altogether.' Sheila gravely nodded. ' You will have a great many advantages there, my bairn, for Aunt Ailsa loves you very much, and you would have your cousins to play with. Dalmore is a very dull place. There is only me.' 4 And Fergus,' put in Sheila promptly. ' Do you want me to go away, papa ? ' 'No, Sheila. I want you to choose for yourself,' was all he said, and would not tempt her even by one persuasive or endearing word. Sheila sat up, as if she felt the gravity of the moment. She io a SHEILA. looked towards Aunt Ailsa, who was standing by the table, with a slightly expectant smile on her face. Then she looked at Macdonald's grave, stern face, which was ploughed with the lines of grief, and as if some intuition told her who needed her most, she put her arms round his neck, and hid her face on his broad breast Sheila's choice was made. CHAPTER XL A WILT PLOTTER. No means too humble, road too steep, For when he cannot walk, he'll creep. J. B. G. SELKIRK. HE month of October came. Peter Crerar began the teaching in Achnafauld again, but Fergus Macleod was not sent to share the advantages of the Fauld school. Neither were the lessons at the manse renewed, and time hung heavily enough on his hands. The schools were all open in Perth for the winter session, and Ellen Macleod had quite determined that Fergus should go to Perth, but she could not surmount the difficulty of getting backward and forward to Shonnen. It was impossible the boy could walk the distance between Dunkeld and Amulree twice a day after the train had brought him from Perth ; and she was in a dilemma. Donald, the pony, was still eating his head off in Dalmore stable, never out except when Sheila occasionally got on his back. All communication had ceased between Shonnen and Dalmore. After all the excitement and the stir of the mournful event was over, an unbroken stillness settled down on Dalmore. Ellen Macleod had never seen her brother since that fruitless visit to Dalmore, but she heard them say he was a changed man. He was seldom seen out of doors, and Jessie told her that the housemaid at Dalmore assured her 104 SHEILA. the Laird seldom left the house. Many pitied the motherless little girl, left in the care of such a moody, miserable man : but they might have spared their pity, for she was perfectly happy. Macdonald unbent only to her, and the two seemed to have come to a most perfect and beautiful understanding. She missed Fergus very much, it is true, and often spoke of him, but her father did not encourage her. For the time being there was a firm, fast barrier drawn betwixt Shonnen and Dalmore. Angus M'Bean, always on the look - out, and cognisant of everything going on in the country - side, got to know of the strait Mrs. Macleod was in about her boy's education, and made a nice little plan, which was to relieve her and be of ultimate benefit to himself. In the factor's eyes Fergus Macleod was the future Laird of Dalmore, and, as such, a person of no mean importance. So, having laid his plan, Angus M'Bean made bold to walk over to Shonnen, one fine, hard night, to have a little private talk with Mrs. Macleod. The factor was a very diplomatic man, and it was his policy never to quarrel with anybody. The cottars could not, with truth, say they had ever seen him in a passion, but he had a cold, pitiless way of getting the better of every one who argued with him, that they feared him quite as much as if he gave way to anger. Now, though Angus M'Bean was employed in and supposed to be devoted to the Laird's interests, it was to his ultimate ^advantage to keep on good terms with the lady at Shonnen, and therefore he determined to be of service to her in this difficulty if he could. * Good-evening, Mr. M'Bean,' said Ellen Macleod, greeting him very cordially, for it was a rare occurrence to see a face from tho outer world in the solitude of Shonnen. ' I hope you are all well at Auchloy ? ' 'All very well, thank you. How are you, Mr. Fergus? A big, tall gentleman he has grown of late, hasn't he, ma'am ? ' 'There's nothing to hinder his growth,' said his mother. ' Pull in the arm-chair for Mr. M'Bean, Fergus, and go to your lessons. There is frost in the air to-night, surely; it feels chilly.' A WILY PLOTTED. 105 'Ay, it is taking in the roads already,' said M'Bean, as he stretched out his hands to the cheerful tire. ' We have long, cold winters in the strath.' ' Cold enough,' answered Mrs. Macleod, resuming her knitting. 'Anything fresh about Auchloy or Achnafauld ? ' 'Nothing in Auchloy, but there's aye a stir in the Fauld,' laughed the factor. ' I have come for a little talk with you, if you will kindly grant me the privilege, Mrs. Macleod.' 'Surely. Take your books to the kitchen beside Jessie Mackenzie, Fergus, and stay till I bid you come back.' Nothing loth for he had no special regard for the factor Fergus gathered up his books and retired. ' A fine, tall, handsome fellow,' repeated Angus M'Bean. 1 He'll be a man in no time. He is pursuing his studies at home, I see. Perhaps he did not get much advantage from Peter Crerar ? ' 1 Oh, he learned well enough at the Fauld school, but it could not go on, Mr. M'Bean,' said Ellen Macleod significantly, ' and he had spirit enough not to like it. It's not a convenient place this for bringing up children in.' ' That's just what I feeL We've been positively in a fix about our own Angus,' said the factor. ' He hates Peter Crerar, and was learning nothing from him. We have made up our minds to send him to Perth Academy, and he goes down on Monday.' 4 And how are you to manage with him ? He cannot come home every day,* said Ellen Macleod, laying down her knitting, and looking with interest at the factor. ' Oh no, ma'am ; that would be impossible. He is to bide in Perth. We have taken lodgings for him with a respectable, genteel person, a widow woman who has come down in the world. And I made bold to come over to-night, to see if you would not consider whether the lads could not go together and share the lodging. They have always been very friendly,' said the factor, stretching a point, for ' Puddin" was always run- ning down Fergus Macleod at Auchloy. ' Of course.' added M'Bean modestly, 'we feel that he would be greatly honoured io6 SHEILA. in having Mr. Fergus for a school companion, and if it is presumptuous on my part to make the suggestion, I ask your pardon. But I said to Mrs. M'Bean, " Whatever may have happened, we still owe respect to Mrs. Macleod, and if we can be of service to her, it need not interfere with our duty in other quarters."' ' You are a good man, and a kind friend, Angus M'Bean/ said Ellen Macleod quickly, ' and I shall gratefully accept your offer for my son. Although circumstances are changed with me, I am thankful to say it will not stint me to pay the half of the lodging, and one day I hope to repay your kindness in a more substantial way than by words of thanks.' ' Don't speak of it, ma'am, I entreat you,' said M'Bean effusively. ' The kindness and the honour received are all on one side. So that is settled ; and, if quite convenient for you, I can drive Mr. Fergus, with his trunk, down with Angus on Monday afternoon. I am to go in to Perth to see them nicely settled, and if you would care to go, ma'am ' ' Oh no, thank you. I have the fullest confidence in you, Mr. M'Bean. You have relieved my mind of a heavy load. That I should have to say that the Laird of Dalmore has cast off the responsibility of his sister's fatherless boy 1 ' 'Ah well, ma'am, you see, when strangers step in, the consequences are always more or less disastrous,' said M'Bean sympathetically. ' When the Laird honoured me with his confidence anent his marriage, I made bold, though respect- fully, as a servant should, to warn him against these conse- quences. But a wilful man must have his way.' It cost Angus M'Bean no effort or qualm of conscience to tell a good, straightforward lie ; for the Laird had never alluded to his marriage to the factor even in the most distant way, and as to listening to his advice, had it been proffered, he might have knocked him into the Girron burn, provided it had been at hand. Ellen Macleod shrewd, keen, clever woman though she was was completely taken in by the smooth-tongued factor, whom even Fergus disliked and distrusted. A WILY PLOTTER. 107 'The Laird seems to have made a hermit of himself since his wife's death,' she said presently. ' He is not taking that interest in his affairs incumbent upon him.' 'No. I have said to my wife more than once that I would not be surprised to see a new laird in Dalmore before very long,' said M'Bean cautiously, and keeping his eye furtively fixed on the face of the woman before him. She started visibly. 1 Is my brother ill in his health, Mr. M'Bean ? In spite of his unbrotherly treatment of me, which I cannot think you are ignorant of, I have a sisterly interest in him. I pray you, tell me how he is.' 4 He has no positive ailment, except brooding over his loss. But we know what happens when a strong man gives up his interest out of doors, and sits perpetually in the house. You have not seen him of late, then ? ' ' No ; for Sabbath after Sabbath the Dalmore pew is empty, save for the child and her nurse,' said Ellen Macleod, com- pressing her thin lips till they were like a thread. Angus M'Bean saw at once where the sore spot lay, and treasured it in his mind for future consideration. ' He looks much older, then. You would scarcely know him. Forgive my presumption, but it is out of respect for the house I speak. It is a shame that Alastair Murray's child should enjoy the privileges of Dalmore, while its rightful heir learns his lessons beside the kitchen fire in a place like this.' Ellen Macleod's colour rose hotly, and her lips twitched. It was such a relief to allude to the wrong which was eating her heart out, that she forgot her usual haughty pride, and spoke out freely to a servant. ' Ay ; it is, as you say, a shame and a black disgrace ! ' she said fiercely. ' But do you think that for this no punishment will fall on Dalmore ? Heaven is more just than men, so let that white-faced girl beware. And let the Murrays watch themselves also, if they think to feather their nest from Dalmore.' io8 SHEILA. 1 It is a sad and difficult case, ma'am ; and though I am bound to do the Laird's work outside, my sympathies and service are at your command,' said the factor impressively. ' There is no way whereby this child could be removed from Dalmore ? ' * No ; but if Macdonald's health is failing he must be watched, Angus M'Bean, or these vultures from Murrayshaugh will get Dalmore among their fingers.' ' Oh no, Mrs. Macleod ; the Laird will never put Dalmore past your son.' ' Will he not ? I tell you he is fit enough to leave it to his wife's child. He has been a fool ever since he married a soft, silly fool ; and he worshipped her as no human being should worship another, and so, in righteous wrath, Heaven took her away. / am perfectly powerless, Angus M'Bean, so you must watch over the interest and the honour of Dalmore. And if my son ever comes to his own, you shall not be forgotten.' 'I am honoured by your confidence, ma'am. Rest assured it is not misplaced,' said the factor, as he rose to his feet. * I hope, however, that the Laird will never do anything so un- befitting a Macdonald.' Ellen Macleod shook her head. * My confidence in him is destroyed/ she said. ' Tell me, Mr. M'Bean, how matters are on the estate. Jessie, my maid, tells me the cottars in the Fauld are grumbling a good deal.' ' True enough. They are an ill-conditioned set. Goodness knows what demands they'll have at rent-day this year. Donald Macalpine wants a new smiddy, and the precentor a roof on his byre ; and that body, Janet Menzies, is to ask her rent down because she's got Jock's bairnies home. A pack of wolves, Mrs. Macleod. They'd tear Dalmore to pieces, and fight over its division. If I had my way, I'd clean out the whole clachan.' 1 That'll never be,' said Ellen Macleod, shaking her head. ' Time sare indeed changed from what they were in my father, the old Laird's time. They said he was a hard man, and yet A WILY PLOTTER. 109 there never was a grumble from a tenant in the place. I would like to ask the cottars in Achnafauld how they would like to pay tithes in kind over and above their rents, as they do in Shian and all up the glen to Kannoch. I think myself they need a harder hand than Macdonald's on them. There must be money in the Fauld.' ' Money I Thousands of pounds, if there's a penny. It's an unholy greed that's got possession of them, and I'm of your opinion, that the Laird's too soft with them. I can tell you, Mrs. Macleod, I don't eat the bread of ease. You'll not hear a good word of me from one end of the glen to the other.' With which remarkably true statement, delivered in a tone of injured but conscious virtue and innocence, Mr. Angus M'Bean took his leave, well pleased with his night's mission. But he would need to go very warily, and not lose sight of his interest with Macdonald. There is always danger in the way of the man who tries to sit between two stools. So the difficulty about Fergus's schooling was solved very satisfactorily for his mother, at least. The boy himself received the first intimation of it from Puddin', whom he met late on the Saturday afternoon on the Corrymuckloch road. Now that the fishing was over, Fergus wearied, and the weather was getting cold for Sheila, and so they kept tryst but seldom at the Girron Brig. The boy used to haunt the road below Dalmore, hoping for a sight of his uncle ; but the familiar sight of graceful Mora and her stalwart rider was not often seen now about Amulree. Puddin' was riding, but drew rein straight before Fergus, grinning broadly. ' So we're gaun' to Perth schule, you an' me, on Monday,' he said in the broad Scotch which sometimes vexed his father, Who yearned after gentility. 'It's a lie,' said Fergus, with the plain, unvarnished candour f one boy to another. 'No, it's no'. You ask yer mither. It's the veru same i io SHEILA. lodgin's. It's a' settled,' said Puddin', grinning still. 'They raicht ha'e asked us whether or no' first.' 1 1 don't believe a word of it, Puddin' M'Bean ; and if it is true, I won't go,' said Fergus serenely, and went away whistling, with his hands in his pockets, thinking the joke was one of Puddin's feeblest attempts. For they had been such bad friends at Achnafauld that the idea of occupying the same lodgings seemed the height of absurdity. Fergus passed on to the brig, stood by the parapet for a few minutes watching the steady flow of the burn, growing big with the first of the 'spates,' and then, without thinking very much what he was doing, crossed over, and began to ascend the hill to Dalmore. I believe Dalmore was never a moment out of the laddie's heart. He thought of it in his waking hours, and dreamed of it when he slept. He loved that place above anything in the world. He went on and on. Colin met him at the head of the approach with a joyous bark, and bounded before him into the house. Hearing the unusual noise, Tory took up the chorus in the drawing-room, and Sheila came running down to see what the commotion was. ' Oh, Fergus, Fergus ! I am so glad to see you 1 ' she cried, her face all aglow with delight. ' Oh, come in, and I'll tell papa. How nice it is to see you, Fergus 1 Come away in.' She clasped her two hands through his arm, and looked up into his face with perfect adoration in her eyes. Dear bairns, how they loved each other I They knew nothing of jealousy, and hate, and dissension. Oh that they could remain ignorant of them for ever 1 ' It seems so long since I saw you, Fergus. Why don't you come up ? When I see Colin trotting over to Shonnen, I wish he could speak and tell you to come.' ' You never come down to the brig, though,' said Fergus reproachfully. ' Aunt Ailsa was up, Fergus, and she told Anne Ross not to let me out when there was any wet on the grass, so I have just to play cattie and doggie with Tory in the drawing-room. A WILY PLOTTER. in Tory is a very funny little dog, but I'd rather be out with you.' * I should think so. Is Uncle Graham in ? ' ' Yes ; it will soon be tea-time. Fapa always has tea with me, and then I have dinner with him. And is it true you are going away to school on Monday ? ' 4 1 never heard of it till this very day. Puddin' M'Bean told me. I met him at the brig just now. He says I'm to live in his lodgings,' said Fergus laughingly. ' Hulloa, Tory ! He's far bigger, Sheila, and far too fat. A lazy rascal, isn't he ? ' ' Oh no. Here's papa. Isn't it nice, papa ? Fergus has come, and we'll have tea together,' said Sheila, running to meet Macdonald, and taking him by the hand. Fergus ran to meet his uncle, too, and was struck by his aged appearance and by the melancholy expression on his face. * Well, Fergus, lad, glad to see you. I was saying to Sheila to-day you'd be up to say good-bye. So Puddin' and you have buried past grievances, and are going to keep each other com- pany in Perth ? A very sensible arrangement. You can have a set-to when the lessons weary you.' 'Uncle Graham,' cried Fergus hotly, 'I never heard a thing about it. I can't be going, or I would have known.' But even as he spoke he remembered noticing a kind of extra work going on at Shonnen, and a great turning out and mending of clothes. 'May be not, boy. It was the factor who told me it was all arranged ; but surely your mother would have told you.' The boy's face flushed, and he dashed away a bitter tear which started in his eye. Oh, but Ellen Macleod was making a grievous and terrible mistake. She was treating the boy as if he were a machine, a thing without feeling or desire, which she could move about at will. And yet she expected filial duty, filial affection, and respect in return. She frequently reminded Fergus of the scriptural injunction to children concerning their duty to their parents, but forgot ii2 SHEILA. to take to her own soul, for her guiding, the corresponding injunction to parents. From the beginning her training of the boy was a mistake. She had the making or marring of a fine character in her hands. Let us pray it may not be completely and irretrievably marred. CHAPTER XIL FACTOR AND LAIRD. Like our shadows, our wishes lengthen as our sun declines. YOUNG. 'VE come up to see what I'm to say to these folks to-morrow, sir,' said Angus M'Bean to the Laird in the library at Dalmore. It was the 5th of December, and the snow lay two feet deep on the ground, and immense drifts stretched from side to side of exposed roads, which were level with the dry stone dykes. The 6th of December was the rent-day on Findowie and Dal- more. Angus M'Bean had quite settled in his inind what he was to say to the malcontents, but of course it behoved him to make the form of consulting the Laird. Macdonald had but a languid interest in these affairs. He was indeed a changed man, like one whose interest in life was dead. It lay buried with his love in the old graveyard at Shian. 'Oh, ay, some repairs they wanted. What are they?' asked Macdonald, rousing himself up when the factor spoke. He was sitting, as he would sit for hours, by the fire, with his elbows on his knees and his head in his hands. 'Donald Macalpine wants a new smiddy, no less. He com- plains of the chimney the smoke won't go up. I bade him knock a brick out of the side. He says it's dark, and I told him to knock some more out of the wall opposite the door.' H4 SHEILA. ' A new smiddy ! ' said the Laird, with a gnm smile. ' Less will have to serve Donald, I doubt, in these hard times. Could we not repair the place for him ? ' 'No, it would be a sinful waste of money. The smiddy is as good as ever it was. You can go along and see it for your- self. I'll tell you what I think. Donald M'Glashan has made such a bonnie penny in the smiddy that he's not caring about it now. Four pound ten for the croft and the smiddy is far too little, Laird, according as they are paying now. The rents are rising instead of falling up by Killin and Rannoch.' 'So I'm told. Well, you can say to Donald if he isn't pleased he can quit,' said the Laird. ' What next ? ' 'Ewan M'Fadyen's byre. Is he to get a new roof on it? There's only a bit hole at the east end where the snow can blow through, because he was too lazy to thaik it in the back end. As I said to him, " Is the Laird to pay money out of his pocket for your idle habits ? " He maun just divot it until next year,' said the factor, without giving the Laird time to put in a word. 'He has a fine crop of oats this year, and his hay was about the best; then he has five pounds from the kirk, an' yet he's aye seeking. We'll let him girn. Jenny Menzies has got two bairns, her brother's weans from Glasgow, and wants her rent down a pound for their keep. What do you think of that for Jenny, Laird ? ' ' Jenny's gleg,' said the Laird, with an absent smile. ' I heard of the bairns. The lad is a trifle queer, and not strong. No doubt she'll have her own to do with the bairns. Take the pound off. What next ? ' 'Sir, I don't think it would be right to take it off Jenny Menzies' rent. It's very moderate, and she makes a heap by her spinning. The bairns will be more a help than a hinder, and if we favour her the rest will have cause to grumble.* ' Take the pound off,' repeated the Laird quietly. What'i next?' 'Bob Macnaughton is for a roof on Rory Macalpine's old house for him to set up another loom in. That shows how the wind blows. They count nothing on the land, Laird, and FACTOR AND LAIRD. 115 use your houses for their own ends. If stocking-wearing pays so well, let them build houses for themselves, say I.' 'Certainly, certainly,' said the Laird quickly. 'I hope that's all, M'Bean. These grumblings weary me. It is only of late they seem to have arisen. What is their cause ? ' 'Just what I've often said, sir: the folk have gotten into idle, fushionless ways, and they'd take the land for nothing and not be content. It would be far less bother and better pay among big farms. At the rent-time, Laird, I could wish the wind would rise and blaw the Fauld to the bottom o' Loch Fraochie. It's all toil and little thanks for them. Findowie's not half the trouble.' ' Well, well, you're among the grumblers, too, Angus,' said the Laird. 'But your job pays you very well. Any back rents to-morrow ? ' 'Ay, that's another thing. What am I to say to James Stewart at Turrich? He's nine pounds back, and three for this tack makes twelve. I don't expect he'll pay the half of it.' * Turrich ! Oh, that's the man with the sickly wife and ten bairns. Well, money can't be very plentiful with him, Angus.' ' Far too many of them, sir. If he'd set them off to service, there would be fewer mouths to feed. And he's wanting more land, too. He says if he had Little Turrich croft and another horse, he could make it pay. But it's all nonsense. He wants Little Turrich for Rob, the ne'er-do-weel son of his that wants to marry Mrs. M'Bean's bit servant lass. A bonnie pair they'd make, an' a bonnie bungle o' Little Turrich, as I told them. But we'll see what old Jamie brings the morn. I think that's a', Laird.' ' An' plenty ; too much, Angus. How's the lad getting on at the school ? ' 'Very well, but he can't keep up with Mr. Fergus, as is hardly to be expected,' said the factor smoothly. ' Then he can't be doing much, for my nephew is no scholar But do they 'gree ? ' asked the Laird dryly. 'I never hear anything about it if they don't,' said the factor, with a laugh. ' Laddies are aye bickering. Is little Miss Murray very well ? ' n6 SHEILA. 'Miss Macdonald is,' returned the Laird, with emphasis. ' She is Miss Macdonald now, M'Bean, you can tell the folk.' Angus M'Bean could only nod his head in silent acknow- ledgment of the Laird's speech. But he made a note of it for future consideration, and for communication to Ellen Macleod. It would be a fine tit-bit for her. Angus M'Bean began to wonder if he had done wisely in paying so much attention at Shonnen. If necessary, he could easily shy off; in the mean- time, he would wait and see. 'I hope the lady who has come to look after Miss Mac- donald's education is giving satisfaction?' he said inquiringly. 'Oh yes; the child is fond of her, and it keeps her from wearying.' ' Mrs. M'Bean would be pleased to see Miss Macdonald and her governess at Auchloy. It would be a nice walk on a fine day,' said the factor, as he rose to go. 'They confine themselves to Dalmore and to the post road, I think; but I'll tell them. There are refreshments on the table, Angus; help yourself.' 'Thank you, sir; your very good health, and Miss Mac- donald's, and prosperity to Dalmore,' said the factor as he took a drink. 'Thank you. Good-night Look up after the business is done,' said the Laird. 1 I'll be sure to do that. I wish it was over,' said the factor, and he was perfectly sincere in what he said. Rent-day was never a very pleasant one for Angus M'Bean, for he was generally obliged to listen to some very plain statements of fact concerning himself. Left alone, Macdonald returned to his solitary musing, and sat long by the fire, indeed until it became smouldering ashes in the grate, brooding over his lost happiness, and making the weight of his sorrow a thousand times heavier. He had no one to rouse him out of himself. Sheila was but a child, and did not fully understand why the shadow should dwell so continuously on her father's brow. Her bounding step, sweet smile, and bright, bairnly ways never failed to rouse him at times ; but now that the governess had come to Dalmore, the two were a little separated. Lady Ailsa FACTOR AND LAIRD. 117 had suggested, and indeed insisted that if Sheila were to remain at Dalmore, a young lady who could be governess and com- panion to the solitary ehild must be engaged. Macdonald did not demur, and the minister's daughter from Logie Murray came to Dalmore. She was a bright, happy creature, to whom Sheila took kindly at once. So the winter promised well for the bairn ; but with the short dreary days and long solitary evenings, when the wintry winds howled fiercely round on the exposed headland on which Dalmore stood, the shadows seemed to fall yet more darkly down upon Macdonald's heart. Angus M'Bean, the factor, had an office in his house at Auchloy, where the estate business was transacted and the rents received. Hitherto the rents had been punctually paid, and that without much grumbling, though bit by bit the privileges were being wrested from the cottars in Achnafauld. It was done very gradually, little by little, but it was the thin edge of the wedge which Angus M'Bean meant to drive home. First, the fishing on the loch had been preserved ; a small thing in itself, and not of much importance, seeing the cottars did not greatly patronize the sport, but it served as a straw to show how the wind blew. Then a fence would be removed which would take off a bit of the common pasture and enclose it with the factor's land; and then it became an impossibility to get any repairs at the hands of the Laird. They paid well for their crofts, about double in proportion per acre to what Angus M'Bean paid for Auchloy, and it might have been thought it was only a fair thing for the Laird to uphold the buildings in the clachan. Certainly it had been the custom for years for the cottars to keep up their meagre steadings, for which purpose they were welcome to obtain wood free of charge from the Laird's saw-mill on the Quaich. But the mill was at the very head of the glen, a very sore road, and the few horses in the Fauld had enough to do on the land without carting wood. So the steadings, in spite of thatching and patching, were falling into disreputable disrepair. Angus M'Bean, as we have seen, went through the form of consulting the Laird, whose remarks he twisted and turned into meanings to suit his own ends. n8 SHEILA. About twelve o'clock next day there was a gathering in the smiddy to discuss matters before the men should proceed to the factor's office. There would be about a dozen men, conspicuous among them Ewan the precentor, dressed in a rusty black coat, and big Sandy Maclean, in close conference with Donald Macalpine the smith, who was holding forth at a great rate about the condition of the smiddy. The dipper was passing freely, and already Ewan M'Fadyen was getting conspicuously talkative and cheery. ' God bless my soul, lads ! ' he said ; ' wha's Angus M'Bean that we should feel our equilibrium vibrate in his presence? If he doesn't think fit to accept the honorarium we offer, let him go anfl hide his diminished head in the loch.' 'That wad suit you, Ewan: ye're unco drouthy this mornin', 1 said Rob Macnaughton the stocking-weaver, dryly. He was a long, gaunt, strange-looking man, with a shaggy black beard, and a gleaming, restless black eye. He did not often appear in any of the smiddy conclaves ; but. as he had a grievance and a request also to lay before the factor when he paid his rent, he had stepped over to see what was going on. ' Listen to the immortal breathings of the Bard of Achnafauld,' said Ewan, in his most grandiloquent style. When Ewan had become excited, even moderately, his eloquence and verbosity became even yet more remarkable than usual. 'Haud yer blethers, Ewan, an* hear what's gaun on,* said Donald Macalpine hastily. ' We're discussin' what's to be done if none of us gets any satisfaction from the Laird. Look at the smiddy, lads, and say what ye think of its condition. There's that muckle draught in't that it wad take a' the peat mosses in the Glen to keep the furnace gaun. I'm sure it's but reasonable to ask something done.' ' The powers that be will doubtless have another version of the story,' said Ewan M'Fadyen. 'If they won't repair the east end of my byre, we'll need to gie Meg quarters in the kitchen. Well, Janet Menzies, my woman, what for should ye enter into the solemn assemblage of the elders ? ' he added, as FACTOR AND LAIRD. 119 the doorway was darkened by a little wizened woman in a shortgown and ' soo-backit ' mutch. ' It's after twel' ; are ye no' gaun west the glen ? ' she asked, in a shrill voice. 'Angus M'Bean '11 be gaspin' for his siller. His haund's like a muckle wame, aye gantin'.' 'Hae ye gotten your pickle to help the hole, Jenny?' asked Sandy Maclean slyly. For answer Jenny turned out the old stocking-foot she held in her hand, and showed three very dirty pound notes. ' That's every penny he gets frae me,' she said shrilly. ' It was Laird Macdonald's wyte that Jock Menzies had to leave the Fauld, and me wi' the land to manage.' 'But it wasna the Laird's wyte that Jock married a wife, Janet,' said Sandy, who, in his big, slow, lumbering fashion, enjoyed a joke. 1 No ; but if Jock had bidden in the Fauld there wad hae neither been wife nor weans, an' I'd tell Laird Macdonald that gin I saw him.' There was something almost uncanny in the old creature's gesture and look as she sharply replied to Sandy's mild chaffing. She was supposed not to be quite right, and most folk pitied the poor bairns who had been sent to her care. Jock, her brother, had been a queer callant also, and such an inveterate poacher, that the glen had got too hot for him. Some of the gentlemen at the lodge in the shooting season had got him a place in Glasgow, in which city he took to himself a wife. But he had never done much good there, and his drinking habits shortened his days. His wife died before him, and the orphans were left in Jenny's care. This woman was a thorn in the flesh of Angus M'Bean. It is not too much to say that a mortal enmity existed between them. The factor feared her wild temper and her unbridled tongue. When she was in a passion she had a knack of recalling certain unpleasant incidents connected with his youth, which he preferred to forget. He was just watching, eager for a chance to get her evicted from the Fauld, but as yet had been unable to find any excuse. That was a busy morning at Auchloy. Peter Crerar had lately been employed occasionally to help the factor with his iao SHEILA. books, and of course was in attendance on the rent-day. Very early poor Jamie Stewart came over from Turrich, anxious to hear the Laird's decision about Little Turrich. It was a matter of moment to him to keep his eldest son at home, but the lad was anxious to marry, and it was impossible to divide the croft. He had seven pounds in his pocket, which he presented to Angus M'Bean with a trembling hand. ' Five pounds short, Jamie, that means a stirk or two ewes for the Laird,' said Angus pleasantly. 'Ye might just have had the beastie sold ; it would have saved trouble.' 'I canna sell a beastie the noo, Mr. M'Bean; the Laird maun just wait,' said Jamie quietly. 'What said he about Little Turrich?' 4 Do ye think the Laird's a fool, Jamie Stewart ? If ye cunna pay for five acres, how could ye pay for seven? Give him his receipt for seven pounds, Peter Crerar. There's somebody else waiting at the door.' 5 But did ye explain aboot the horse and what Bob wantit ? ' asked Jamie Stewart. 'The Laird has mair to think of than your affairs, Jamie Stewart. They would gie him but little satisfaction. Awa' back to Turrich, and I'll be owre some day to wale a beastie for the rent.' A shadow came upon the old man's face, but he w*s of a meek disposition, and retired without a word. As he went out, Janet Menzies pushed herself into the room, and, with a curious leer at Angus M'Bean, drew out her three pound- notes. ' There ye are, my man ; there's yer siller, an' xmickle guid may it dae ye,' she said, in her shrill voice, which was hateful to Angus M'Bean. 'Three pounds, Janet? where's the other one? The Laird has not let down your rent, that I'm aware of.' ' Ye'll get nae mair frae me. Did ye tell him that I had gotten Jock's bairus to keep ? ' ' I did ; but we can't keep them for you, so out wi 1 your other pound, my woman, without more ado.' ' No' anither penny, an' its no' wi' my will ye got that. FACTOR AND LAIRD. 121 I want to ken is, what you pay for Auchloy, Angus M'Bean, and hoo many bittocks ye are thievin* frae the Fauld ? ' Angus M'Bean swore at the woman, and she smiled a quiet smile to herself; nothing pleased her better than to see the factor angered. * My woman, ye'll pay for yer impertinence. D'ye ken wha ye're speakin' to ? The Laird shall ken o'd, an* if ye bide anither year in the Fauld, I'm mistaken. Gie the auld crone her receipt, Peter, an' let her take her ill tongue outside. Come in, Ewan M'Fadyen. I see ye keekin' through the keyhole wi' yer skelly e'e. Come in an* pit doon yer bawbees. No, if ye want yer byre to keep out the snaw ye maun divot it, the Laird says. Ye needna preach ; I haena time to listen to yer maunderin's. Ye're owre weel aff, an' dinna ken o' it.' With such grim pleasantries the factor received and dismissed the tenants. Every request was refused, every grievance scouted and laughed at. And he laid it all at the Laird's door, putting words in his mouth he had never uttered. So the seeds of disunion were sown, and Achnafauld was set against Dalmore. 11 CHAPTER XIIL FORESHADOWINGS. Man's inhumanity to man Makes countless thousands mount. BURNS. [0 you know where Malcolm is, Katie ? ' * Malcolm I Oh, Mr, Fergus, is it you ? He is at the potatoes. Shall I run and tell him you want him ? ' asked Elate Menzies, blushing all over at the unexpected sight of Fergus Macleod in the doorway, when her plump round arms were bare to the elbow, preparatory to beginning the weekly baking. ' That's the Shonnen lad's voice. What for should he no' cross my door-stane. Has his hire made him ower prood to sit doon by a Fauld ingle ? ' cried a shrill, uncanny voice from the depths of a big chair by the hearthside. Jenny Menzies had lost the power of arm and limb through rheumatics, but her tongue was just as ready, and her temper as fiery as ever. Although she was so helpless, and so utterly dependent on her niece, she was not in the least grateful for any service rendered by the girl's willing hands. When too angry to speak, she would throw whatever came handiest at her peats oftener than anything, for her chair stood close by the peat bin. ; Eh, is that you, Jenny?' cried Fergus, with a laugh. 'I FORESHADO WINGS. 1 23 thought you might be sleeping. How is the world using you, eh?' As he spoke, the big handsome lad stalked into the little kitchen and took the old woman's hand in a kindly grip, which pleased her well, though it hurt her poor swollen joints not a little. ' Eh, callant, ye hae grown in spite o' yer lare an' yer toon's meat. Ech, what a year or twa can dae for brats o' bairns.' It was true, a few years had indeed wrought wondrous changes in the young folk who make the chief interest of this history. We left Katie Menzies a bairn, and we find her, when we cross the bridge of these few years, a comely, womanly girl of fifteen. She had a woman's work to do, and a woman's care and forethought to exercise, which had doubtless given her a maturity of appearance and manner she might not otherwise have attained so early. She was a sweet-looking young maiden, with a clear, healthy-hued face, a bright, speaking blue eye, and a happy smile. Her dress, a striped skirt and a light calico shortgown, with a white handkerchief folded round her sweet throat and crossed on her bosom, was peculiarly and modestly becoming. It was no wonder they called Katie Menzies the bonniest lass in Achnafauld. As for Fergus Macleod, at sixteen he had almost attained a man's height, though his loose figure had yet to fill up and make breadth proportionate to the length. His face was not so ruddy as it had been when he lived constantly in the open air, but its hue was perfectly healthy, and his clear grey eyes bright and undimmed as of yore. 'Sit down upon a seat, Fergus Macleod, if ye be the same laddie ye aye were,' said Jenny Menzies brusquely. ' Sit down, I say, and gie's the news. I ken naething. My limmers o' bairns never tell a thing, and now that I'm laid aside the neebor folk think I'm deid.' Katie turned to her baking with a twinkle in her happy eye, which Fergus caught and smiled too. He looked at Katie with great interest. How bonnie and sweet she was ! He wondered he had not thought of it before. ' So ye are gaun awa' to the college, I hear,' pursued Jenny. ' "What are they to mak' o' ye ? ' ' I don't know. I am going to the college just now to please 124 SHEILA. my mother. And I'll have to do something for my living,' said Fergus, with a slight cloud on his brow, for the sore subject was a sore subject still. ' An' what's to come o' Dalmore, eh ? The auld Laird's sail failed, they say ; never oot the hoose.' * So I hear. I have not seen my uncle for a long time,' said Fergus hastily. ' I can't sit a long time, Jenny, for I've to go round the Fauld, and I want a talk with Malcolm.* 1 An' when are ye gaun away ? ' 'On Monday.' * An' when did ye come ? * ' Yesterday.' ' They dinna gie ye muckle rest for the soles o' yer feet. Is the factor's son gaun wi' ye ? ' 'He is going to college, but his classes will be different. We'll not see much of each other.' ' He's idled aboot a' the simmer, an' played a heap o' mischief in the Fauld. Malcolm fair hates him. Oor Malky's maybe no' a' there, but he has ta'en the size o' Puddin' M'Bean,' said the old woman, with a kind of grim delight. ' D'ye ken wha's Laird o' Dalmore now, Master Fergus ? ' 'No/ said Fergus, looking slightly surprised. ' Him up at Auchloy. Eh, lad, it's time ye were at hame to look efter what should be yer ain. If ye are ower lang, there'll no' be muckle to divide. An' there's a young ane comin* up that'll be waur nor the auld ane. If ye are a true Macdonald, lad, ye'll see to it that the factorship disna pass frae father to son. We ken a' aboot it here. Gang to Donald M'Glashan, or Rob Macnaughton, or Dugald M'Tavish. They'll a' gie ye the same story.' ' It is surely not so bad as that, Jenny,' said Fergus, trying to speak cheerfully, as he rose to his feet. ' I can't believe that my uncle is not able to manage his own affairs. Good-day to you. Good-day. Katie, come out, will yon, and let me see where Malcolm is ? ' Katie wiped her hands and followed . him out to the door. ' Katie/ said Fergus soberly, ' I've heard a great deal about FORESHADO WINGS. 1 25 Angus M'Bean's way of going on. Is it really true that he oppresses the folk in the Fauld ? ' Tears started in Katie's eyes. 'Ay, it's quite true, Master Fergus. I wondered, indeed, that auntie didna say more. He's been very hard on us. He seems to hate us, and wants us out of the place. Mr. Fergus, I'm perfectly feared whiles at Malcolm. Oh, try and speak to him. You know he is a queer laddie, and when he gets into his awfu' passions, if he were to see the factor or Angus, he micht kill them. I whiles wish we had bidden in Glasca, though I like the Fauld. It's grand to live in sic a bonnie place, among sic kind neebors.' Til try what I can do, Katie,' said Fergus, with deeply clouding brow, for he felt himself very helpless. He was growing up, and understood many things which had puzzled him in boyhood. He loved the old folk in the Fauld, for they had known him since he was a bairn. 'Have ye seen Miss Sheila this time, Mr. Fergus?' asked Katie. 'She is to go away to the boarding-school soon, she says.' 'No, I have not seen her. Does she come often to the Fauld?' ' Oh yes ; twice or thrice a week. She is so kind to auntie. If it werena for what she brings, Mr. Fergus, we couldna live. We had to put away the sheep and the cow too, for we had no grass.' ' What's become of the hill. Is the pasture not as good as it once was ? ' ' Ay, but we daurna put a beast on it. Oh, it's hard times, Mr. Fergus. But there's auntie cryin*. Speak to Malky, will ye, an' bid him be more patient. I whiles think that he angers Mr. M'Bean more than he need.' ' I'll try, Katie ; don't be vexed,' said Fergus, and shook her by the hand, for they had been bairns together at the Fauld School, and nobody could help liking Katie. He hesitated just a moment ; desire drew him to the smith's shop, but he knew he would get the information he wanted without ado from Rob Macnaughton, the stocking- weaver. So he ran across the road and lifted the sneck of i26 SHEILA. Bob's door. All the other doors in the Fauld stood open summer and winter in the daytime, but Rob's was aye shut. The loom seemed to be silent, and when he pushed open the kitchen door, there was Rob, with his little table before the fire, taking his solitary tea. He was not in any way changed, unless the big, gaunt, shuffling figure seemed to have grown more loose and thin-looking ; but there was not a grey hair in his head, nor any sign of approaching age on his grim, stern face. 'It's you,' he said, fixing his keen eye on Fergus, but without any sign of recognition. 'If ye be comin' in, shut the door.' 'Well, Rob, how are you? Well enough, I see. I'm not forgetting my old friends. I have only been at Shonnen for two days, and here I am/ ' So I see ; ye've grown. Ye are a man now, Fergm Macleod. Sit down if ye are to bide a bit.' ' Yes. I'm going to bide a bit. I've come to you seeking authentic information,' he said, in his quick, impetuous fashion. ' Rob, is it true that times are getting hard for the Fauld folk? Tell me all about it.' A slow, bitter smile came upon Rob Macnaughton's grim face. He took up his saucer and drank all his tea, and then lifted the table back to the wall. ' I've gi'en up parritch,' he said laconically ; * when ye've to buy milk, tea's cheaper, and it takes less time to make. So ye've been hearing some rumblings o' the thunder that some- times shakes the clachan ? ' ' I've been at Jenny Menzies's. Katie says they're positively ill off. Rob, did my uncle give orders that their beasts were not to go on the hill ? ' 'There's no hill now, lad. It's fenced in as the lands of Auchloy. There's a new laird. But, as ye've been away, ye've maybe not heard of the change.' ' It's abominable, perfectly abominable I ' cried the lad hotly. 'If you knew my uncle as I know him, Rob, you would be perfectly mad at Angus M'Bean. My uncle is so kind, a kinder man never breathed, only, of course, he is just. If h FORESHADO WINGS. 1 2 7 knew the true state of affairs, he would set them right instantly. I'll go to him myself and tell him how you are oppressed.' ' I misdoubt not your word, Fergus, for I remember Laird Macdonald as a just man, though not generous. It is only justice we want. Justice would enable us to live. It has come to this, Fergus Macleod, that the spoiler and the oppressors have turned the hearts of the people to gall within them, and that they can stand it no more. The day is coming, nay, it is drawing very near, when the snell winds shall whistle through the rent roofs of Achnafauld, and where there has been the hum of peace and plenty, with the music of bairns' voices, there shall be but the cryin* o' the burn an' the soughin' o' the birks, and the homes where peace and neighbourly kindness dwelt shall become the haunt of the cattle and the deer. * Some day this house, Fergus Macleod, where my forebears dwelt long before there was a Macdonald set foot upon the soil, will be a rent ruin, a cattle-pen, maybe, for the stock of the Laird of Auchloy. But let him beware. Let him not think he stands firm. For the tears and the curses of the people he hath so grievously oppressed shall ascend to heaven, and hath not the Lord, whom mayhap we have forgotten in our prosperity, said, "Vengeance is mine, I will repay"?' The poet's eye shone with the peculiar fire which Fergus remembered used to awe him in boyhood, when Kob would forget his presence, and half chant, half recite his weird Gaelic ballads and the superstitious legends in which he delighted. 'You are poetical, but not practical, Kob,' said the lad quietly. ' Have the Fauld folk thought of anything to do in self-defence ? I wish you'd tell me everything. I may be able to do something to help you.' Rob laid the points of his fingers together in a peculiar way, and looked over them at the lad with a touch of compassion. 'You? Lad, ye are too open and guileless to fight the devil My advice to you is, steer clear of Angus M'Bean. The only thing that would save the Fauld would be if the Laird were to die now, and leave the place to you. It is yours by right. She is a sweet bairn, they say, that comes down from Dalmore ; 128 SHEILA, but she is not of your blood. The place is yours by right, but it never will be yours, Fergus Macleod, as long as that ill man bides in the glen.' 'If I had the power I'd make short work of him,' said Fergus, and he clenched his hands ; for the interests of his heart nay, of his life were bound up in the place and the people among whom his boyhood had been spent. No mortal knew what it had been for the lad to dwell away from these hills and glens, and to give his attention to books. He had gained more sense now, however ; and, knowing that education and knowledge are powers which have no equal, he had ceased to kick over the traces, and was quiet in scholastic harness But meanwhile, oh, what things were happening in the glen ! ' Do you mind Jamie Stewart, that was in Turrich, Fergus ? ' Yes, fine.' 'Well, in the spring-time there ye ken what the March blasts are up Glenquaich he was put out of Turrich evicted, I think, is the new-fangled word they used. He was back in his rent about ten pounds, I think ; but there was stuff and beasts to pay it over and above. And the wife had to be carried out, bed and all, and laid down at the dyke-side above the drift. What think ye o' that, Fergus Macleod ? ' Tears tears of anger and burning indignation stood in the boy's honest eyes. * And what became of them, Rob ? ' * The Laird of Garrpws gave them a house and a croft, and there they are biding in the meantime till things are settled. But I would lay this thing before you, Fergus Macleod, for ye are a just, fair-minded lad, wi' mair nor a man's sense. Two hundred years ago ay, and more the Stewarts abode in Turrich, and farmed their own lands. At the '45 Turrich went out to fight wi' Charlie, and died on Culloden, and then the place was confiscated, they called it, but we are honest folk, and speak in an honest tongue. So Macdonald that was in Dalmore, a Royalist, though he bore one of the best Highland names, seized upon Turrich an' a' the lands up the glen. An' syne, when the blast blew past, and Turrich's wife an' bairns came back to the glen, they found their home stolen from them, FORESHADO WINGS. \ 29 and that they had no habitation on the face of the earth. But for the love they bore to the place of their birth, they took it upon Macdonald's terms, and became tillers of their own soil once more, but paying tithes in money and kind for their lease.' Is all that true, Rob ? ' True ? Ay, and that's but one case. Not that we're grumbling. We are willing to pay a fair rent if we can but make a living,' said Rob, growing more practical. 'At one time that was easy, for the Laird meddled not with us. I know not, Fergus, why Angus M'Bean should have sic an ill- will at the place and the folk among whom he was born. His father was a fine man ; but a good man may have an ill son. There are folk, Fergus, who make good servants, but canna rule. It sweeps them off their feet. Auchloy is one. But he has a long account to settle wi' the Almighty at the last day. I'd rather be Jamie Stewart, landless and friendless, than Angus M'Bean of Auchloy.' Fergus Macleod hid his face in his hands. These things weighed upon his heart. Sometimes he was tempted to doubt the verv existence of God when he saw such gross injustice clone his creatures. But better thoughts prevailed, and he saw that it was only human greed, unsubdued by divine love, and unre- strained by divine law, that wrought the mischief; and Fergus lifted his troubled heart in silent prayer, and still bad faith that God heard him, and in some way would cause the right to pre- vail. Could that faith have always anchored his soul ? But we shall see. CHAPTER XIV. MALCOLM. A rude, wild soul, To whom the whispering breeze, The silent hills, the rushing tide, Spoke with strange voices. OES my uncle never come to the Fauld now, Rob?' Fergus asked at length. 'No. They say he's sore spent, and cannot live long. He lost his spirit, lad, when his lady died.' 'And what do you think will be the end of it all?' said the boy, with a burst of wistful earnestness very touching to behold. 'The end will be as I said. The four winds of heaven will sweep through the Fauld, and will not be heard by the ears of living mortal in the place,' said Rob. ' Ye mind of Peter Crerar, the schoolmaster, that was clerk, too, to the factor?' ' How could I have forgotten Peter, Rob, when I was at his school for six months ? ' ' Well, he and his brother David and his uncle, lang John M'Fadyen that was in Easter Lynmore, went away in the spring across the seas to Upper Canada ; and what think ye was their errand, lad ? ' Fergus shook his head, his eyes fixed on Bob with the most intense interest. 1M MALCOLM. 131 ' It was to see what manner of country it is : to view the land, as the Israelites viewed the land of Canaan ; and no later gone than yesterday letters came to the Fauld, and it's a grand report. So there'll be a heap of spinning and weaving in the Fauld this winter, Fergus Macleod.' 'What for?' ' To prepare against the day when the folk shall rise in a body and go forth from their own land to a land they know not and have never seen. But it couldna well be harder till them than this has been.' 1 You don't mean to say, Rob Macnaughton, that they're going to emigrate?' 1 Yes ; after due consideration, that is what decision we have arrived at, and it is a wise one. I shall not myself leave Achnafauld, because I can aye get bite and sup, and I have some siller laid by. But for the young men and the fathers of families it is a wise plan, Fergus, that they should leave before they are cleared out, as they certainly will be, by the corbie at Auchloy, if they bide muckle langer in the place.' ' Does my uncle know of this ? ' ' I know not, Fergus. Auchloy himself has an inkling of it.' ' And who are going, Rob ? Tell me quick. Oh, I can hardly believe it ! ' ' There's all the Stewarts, and the Crerars, and Ewan M'Fadyen. Of Donald Macalpine I'm not sure, for his business is good, and cannot be meddled with by Angus M'Bean. And there's big Sandy Maclean an' a' his folks, and wee Sandy Maclean down by at Wester Coila, an* a heap more whose names I canna mind.' ' Are they all from Dalmore folk, Rob ? Are there no dis- contents among Shian or Garrows cottars ?' ' Not that I've heard of. Cameron of Garrows and Campbell of Shian deal straight with their own people, and there is not the lying, evil tongue of Angus M'Bean to come between. Fergus Macleod, if ever you come to your own, or have name and lands in your hand, take warning by what has happened here among the folk ye have kent all your days. Let no man come between yon and your folk, and then there will be 13* SHEILA. justice done. Are ye for off? I misdoubt, laddie, I have laid a heavy sorrow on your young heart, but bear it lightly, as it is not of your own doing. If ye come in by another day, I'll let ye hear my lilt about the desolation of the Fauld. It has been wrung from me by the vexations of the folk. They think me thrawn, and say my heart is like the nether millstane, but they dinna ken that the strong currents rin wi' nae muckle din, and that I'm wae, wae for Achnafauld, an* the leal hearts that have kent no other hame.' ' Rob,' said Fergus, turning back at the door, ' do you ever see or speak with Malcolm Menzies ? Katie says she is anxious about him.' ' She may be ; the lad has a fine spirit that's easy fretted. I've whiles a dwam about him mysel'. There's a mortal hatred between Angus M'Bean and him.' * Are the Menzies not among the intending emigrants ? ' Rob shook his head. 'Jenny Menzies couldna sail the seas with her stiff joints now, and the bairns maun bide behind wi' her. They say Malcolm Menzies is daft, Fergus ; but dinna you believe it. He has the music of the winds an' of the runnin' waters in his soul. The puir chield is a poet, an' disna ken what a' the clangour an* the jumble means. He'll find his weird yet, Fergus, an' there will be peace of mind when the music that's in him finds its voice, Fergus. He'll thraw nae mair wi' Angus M'Bean, and vex his sister's soul, for he'll hae that within him that'll make him at peace with all men.' 'Does he come in by to you, Rob?' 'Whiles, an' sits an' greets an' greets as if he were a lass bairn instead of a muckle haflin wi' the strength o' twa men. Then I pit the bolt in the door, an' gie him my rhymes an' sangs or the lad's fair beside himsel' wi' delight. Daft ! na, there's no' muckle daftness about Malcolm Menzies. He'll maybe surprise us a' some day. 1 ' Til go, then, Rob, and look out for Malcolm. I'd like well to see him before I go to the college.' ' Does the thought of the gown an' the pulpit no' set up your birse now as it did, Fergus ? ' MALCOLM. 133 'Fll never be a minister, Rob, though I should cast peats for my living. But I have more sense than that, and I know that without learning a man can do but little in the world. My mother knows my mind is made up, but she is anxious for me to take my degree in arts at Edinburgh.' 'Ye are a sensible lad, but ye promised weel as a bairn,' said Rob, looking into the fine, open, honest countenance of the boy with a strange, softened glance. ' Gin ye were but Laird o' Findowie an' Dalmore, there would be less talk about the ferlies across the sea. Guid e'en, Fergus, an' may every blessing guide ye.' Fergus nodded and strode off, while Rob put his bolt in the door and went back to his loom. Fergus Macleod wondered when he heard folk speak of Rob Macnaughton as a dull, sour, morose being, with whom it was impossible to converse. Children's hands could open the locked door of Rob's heart, and push it back on its rusty hinges, and he whom the child can love is never bad. Fergus ran over the stepping-stones, never looking back, though he heard the smith's jolly voice calling him. He knew that, if they inveigled him in, Donald and Mary between them would keep him an hour at the fireside. Behind Janet Menzies's cottage he saw Malcolm working alone in the potato drills, though it was so dark he could not possibly see to do his work well. Fergus gave a loud, shrill whistle, and stood up on a little hillock at the burn-side, so that Malcolm might see him. The tall, loosely-hung figure gave a start and stood up, looking round to see where the whistle came from. Catching sight of Fergus, Malcolm put down his graip and creel, and came slowly up the drill. He was an odd figure in his rough homespun, his trouser legs warped round with straw ropes to keep out the mud, and his big, sprawling feet encased in heavy clogs. The remains of a red Tarn o' Shanter hung on to a tuft of hair on his crown, leaving the big forehead bare. His large melancholy eyes had a somewhat wandering look in them, and there was a weak look about the mouth. He was not a robust lad, but when it pleased him, or when he was roused into a passion, he could exhibit a terrible strength. His appearance was singular 134 SHEILA. in the extreme. It was, indeed, difficult to believe that he was bonnie Katie's brother ; but he was very dear to Katie, and she was the apple of Malcolm's eye. His love for her was indeed more like the worship of a lover than the sober affection of a brother. He was pitied in the Fauld, but not much taken notice of except by Rob Macnaughton, who had found the key to that half-wild, sensitive, passionate nature. A gleam of pleased recognition came in his face when he came near to Fergus Macleod, for whom he had a strong regard. Fergus had never laughed at or teased the poor, shy, queer lad, whom everybody else treated as a half-wit, and Malcolm Menzies was capable of intense gratitude. 'Halloa, Malky, what a man you've grown,' cried Fergus cheerily. ' I'm sure you can't see to lift potatoes now. Come on up the road a bit with me ; I want to speak to you, and I haven't time to wait.' ' When did ye come back ? ' asked Malcolm, with a slow smile of pleasure on his sunburned face. ' Why, yesterday, and I'm going away on Monday. I've been in seeing Aunt Jenny and Katie. How are you getting on, Malky ? ' ' Oh, fine,' cried Malcolm, and dropped his eyes down on the ground. He walked usually thus, in a kind of shuffling gait, with his hands in his pockets. Rob Macnaughton used to watch him whiles, and think what a revelation these brooding thoughts would be could they be laid bare. ' You are getting to be a grand farmer, they say, Malcolm. You work all your aunt's croft yourself, don't you ? ' ' Ay ; I could dae't twice ower noo,' said the lad, with emphasis ; ' we've nae beasts noo. It's dreich work without a beast aboot the place.' ' Oh, but you'll get beasts again, Malky,' said Fergus cheerily, for he did not wish to get him on to the vexed question of the crofts. ' I want to hear about how you're getting on with your lessons. Can you write yet?' 'Yes, an' read an' a'; Katie learned me. She writes a graund haund,' said Malcolm proudly. 'Ay, Katie's as clever as she's bonnie; we are all prcud of MALCOLM. 135 Katie,' said Fergus cheerily. * And has Rob succeeded in teach- ing you Gaelic yet ? ' ' Some o'd,' said Malcolm, with a grin of delight ; ' but it's awfu' ill. Eob's a graund man.' ' Yes, he is. And when are we to see your poetry, Malky ? I know it is in you.' A dark red flush rose slowly over the lad's face, and Fergus wondered to see his mouth tremble. ' My poetry ! hoots, Rob jist havers.' 'Never a bit of him, Malky ; Rob knows what's what. Make up a song about Katie. I'm sure you could never get a finer subject.' ' Katie thinks my sangs graunder than Rob's,' said Mal- colm, betrayed into confidence by Fergus Macleod's cheery sympathy. ' Of course ; an' so maybe will I, though the Gaelic is a want. It's a splendid language, Malcolm ; I'm learning it myself, but it's worse than Greek or Latin. Well, are you going to let me have one of your songs, eh ? ' * No' the nicht,' said Malcolm, actually trembling. Poor laddie ! nobody knew what his ' sangs ' were to him. Even Rob Macnaughton, a poet himself, only partially understood. ' Have you any books of poetry in the house, Malcolm ? I could get some for you in Edinburgh,' said Fergus kindly. ' I have Ossian,' said Malcolm proudly. ' Rob said he wad gie me it when I could read it, and I can read it now.' ' Can you really ? and do you like Ossian, Malcolm ? ' asked Fergus curiously, for it always seemed a lot of nonsense to him a repeating of long fine-sounding sentences without meaning. Our Fergus was a very commonplace young man, only very honest and kind and true, which all poets are not. ' Like Ossian ? I should just think it. He's graund,' said Malcolm, stretching himself up, for these were his own themes. He lived up by at the heid of the loch, ye ken, and he's buried in the sma* glen.' 'A bit of him, eh, Malky? Some say he's buried down at the Rumbling Brig, but we won't quarrel over Ossian's grave. Have you ever heard of Sir Walter Scott, Malky ? ' 136 SHEILA. ' Rob whiles speaks aboot him.' ' He was a great man. I'll send you one of his books. It is called Waverley, and is written about Glenquaich. He once stopped in the inn at Amulree, but nobody knew. Would you like to read it ? ' ' Ay wad I.' 4 Well, I'll send it. Stick into your books, and maybe you'll be Sir Malcolm Menzies some day. Never mind anything else. What are ye making such a face at, Malky ? ' In the grey distance a horse and rider were rapidly approach- ing, and Fergus recognised Puddin' M'Bean. He was always called Puddin' yet, to distinguish him from his father. Puddin' had developed into a very genteel young gentleman, and had all the airs of a college-bred man. He would never be good- looking, for, though much thinner, his figure was still too broadly proportioned to be elegant, and his hair was as red and his face as freckled as ever. He was going away to Edin- burgh to serve a time in the office of a Writer to the Signet, and also to attend some law classes, all with a view to fitting himself to be factor on an estate. * Hulloa, Macleod ! been at the Fauld, eh ? ' he said, drawing in his pony sharply, and turning him round till his hind legs were dangerously near to Malcolm Menzies. ' What time are you going off on Monday? I've been up at Dalmore.' ' Have you? ' asked Fergus stiffly. 1 Yes. I was asked up to tea with Miss Macdonald, 1 said Puddin', glorying in the words. ' Get out of the way, Malcolm Menzies. Don't you see you're annoying my pony?' ' What div I care ? ' asked Malcolm, and there was positively a malignant look on his face. ' Get out of the way, or I'll let you taste my whip-end,' said Puddin' angrily, but Fergus gripped him by the arm. ' Malcolm Menzies is with me, and the road is not yours, M'Bean,' he said quietly, but meaningly. 'I'll punch your head if you don't ride on.' ' Oh, very well. I beg your pardon, and Mr. Malcolm Menzies's pardon likewise,' said Angus scoffingly. ' Judge a MALCOLM. 137 man by the company he keeps. I don't admire yours, Fergus Macleod.' And, being at a safe distance, Puddin' laughed a mocking laugh, which made Fergus long to let him feel the weight of his strong right arm. 'Never mind him, Malky. He knows no better,' said Fergus soothingly, for he saw that his companion's passion was rising. ' Where were we at? Oh, about Sir Walter Scott.' ' I'll be into him some day, an' if I begin I'll no 1 let him aft easy,' said Malcolm, with an oath. It gave Fergus quite a shock to hear an oath fall from the lips of Malcolm Menzies, but he took no notice of it. ' Never mind him, Malky. He's just as impudent to me, and I never think of minding him. Do you mind the day I thrashed him, and the other day I dookit him for telling on you, when we were all at Peter Crerar's school ? ' But the cloud would not lift from Malcolm's brow. It was indeed as Rob had said. He cherished a mortal hatred against the M'Beans, both father and son. 'Malky, do you ever tell Miss Sheila about your songs when she comes down ? ' asked Fergus, making one more effort to change the subject. To his unspeakable amazement, Malcolm, instead of giving an answer, turned round and ran off as if pursued by something evil. Fergus looked after him a moment, not without apprehen- sion lest it was Puddin' he was after ; but Malcolm turned off the road, and cut through the moss at Lynmore towards the Fauld. Fergus laughed. Malcolm was certainly queer. He did not, however, connect his extraordinary action in any way with the mention of Sheila's name. Fergus quickened his pace when his companion left him, and his heart was full of bitterness. He remembered the fact that Angus M'Bean should be an invited guest at Dalmore. The factor's son, ill-natured, loutish Angus M'Bean, drinking tea with Sheila in the drawing-room! Surely Rob had not exaggerated, and the M'Beans had too sure a hold on Dalmore. For two or three years now Fergus had seen very little of Sheila, and had spoken with his uncle only once '38 SHEILA. the previous Christmas. He was never asked to Dalmore, and his mother never encouraged him to go. Nevertheless, when he came to the school corner that night, he turned along the Crieff road towards the Girron Brig. He had an errand to Dalmore. CHAPTER XV. UNCLE GRAHAM. And whispering tongues can poison truth. COLERIDGE. HEN Fergus reached the house, he did not at once enter, as he had been wont to do, without giving any notice of his presence. He was now almost a stranger in Dalmore, and, besides, the familiar freedom of childhood had given place to the shyness of youth. So, after looking about him with an interest quite as keen if less boisterous than of yore, he pulled the hall bell. A strange servant who did not know him answered to his summons. * Can I see the Laird Mr. Macdonald ? ' he asked. ' I don't know, sir. The Laird sees very few. But I can take your message and your name.' * Perhaps I can see Miss Macdonald then,' said Fergus quickly. ' My name is Macleod. You do not know me, I see. I live at Shonnen Lodge.' * Oh, I beg pardon ! ' said the woman. ' Come in. Miss Macdonald is in the drawing-room with her governess.' * Thank you, I can go up ; I know the way,' said the lad, with a smile. ' You need not tell my uncle ; Miss Macdonald will take me to him.' 140 SHEILA. It was a simple thing, and the woman could not be expected to know him, yet his reception chilled the already full heart of Fergus Macleod. Inch by inch he was drifting away from Dalmore, and now he was verily a stranger within its gates. He paused on the drawing-room landing, for the memory of the last time he had been in the house swept over him. It was indeed true that he had not been within Dalmore since the day of his aunt's burying. There was no sound issuing from the drawing-room; if it held two occupants, they were not conversing. But with a light, somewhat hesitating knock, Fergus opened the door and went in. By the fire, deeply engrossed in the pages of a book, was a young girl with two long plaits of bright brown hair hanging down her back, and a sweet girlish face supported in her hand, while her dark eyes eagerly scanned the fascinating Waverley, which was even then creating a great talk in the district. Could that be Sheila, the little mite in pinafores, who had come with such joyous anticipations with her mother to Dalmore ! The years had changed her, and yet dealt tenderly with her ; as he looked, Fergus thought he had never seen a creature more passing fair. She was so engrossed that she did not hear him come in, but when Tory, grown old and cross, gave a short warning bark, Sheila looked round in surprise, and then sprang to her feet. ' Fergus, Fergus, is it really you ? ' she cried, with all the old frankness, and she advanced towards him with both her hands outstretched. There was all the familiarity of childhood mingling curiously with the shyness of young girlhood in her look and action. ' Yes ; I thought you would have forgotten all about me, Sheila,' said Fergus, and they shook hands quietly; then a curious constraint fell upon them. The old bairnly love was still between them, but the years had raised a little barrier which could not be bridged all at once, ' Your governess is not with you, Sheila ? ' said Fergus then. ' She was here a little ago. She has gone to her own room. Have you come to stay at Shonnen for a while ? ' UNCLE GRAHAM. 14, 'No. I am going away to Edinburgh on Monday. Did Angus M'Bean not tell you? I met him riding home from here.' * He said he was going, but we never spoke of you. What a dandy he has grown ! ' said Sheila, with a little laugh, which somehow put Fergus more at his ease. ' Ay, he has a great conceit. I have come up from the Fauld, Sheila, Katie Menzies told me you were going away to school.' ' Yes, for a year to London, Fergus. I don't want to go, but Aunt Ailsa has insisted on it. She says I must see some- thing more ; and two of her other nieces, her brother's girls from Suffolk, are at the same school. I don't like to leave papa.' ' How is Uncle Graham ? He is just like a shadow to me now, Sheila. I hear people speaking about him, but nobody seems to know very much about him.' ' He is not very well, poor papa.' Sheila's eyes filled with tears. She was only a girl yet, but she had acted a woman's part in Dalmore. Like Fergus, she had known very little of the ordinary pursuits and joys of childhood. * Can I see him ? ' 'Of course. Will you come just now? He will have had his dinner. We do not all dine together now because papa is not able.' ' Does he ever speak about me, Sheila ? ' ' Not often. I don't think you have behaved very well to him, Fergus. You never come to see him when you are at Shonnen.' ' I had to obey my mother, Sheila. She will be angry to- night when she knows I am here.' Sheila was silent. She too, like Fergus, was beginning to understand things. She knew what had built up the barrier between Shonnen and Dalmore. ' I heard a great lot of strange things at the Fauld to- day, Sheila. Did you know the folks are talking of leaving it ? ' 'Yes, I know. Oh, Fergus Macleod, everything is going wronpj ! ' said Sheila, her tears starting afresh. 142 SHEILA. ' Does Uncle Graham know about it ? Surely he will never permit it.' ' He knows, but he is very angry with the poor people ; I do not know why,' said Sheila perplexedly. ' They must have behaved very badly to him, but I can't believe it.' ' Nor I. Somebody is telling lies about them, Sheila,' said Fergus hotly. ' That is why I have come up. I want to tell my uncle how hardly they are used.' ' Perhaps you will be able to prevent them going away,' said Sheila hopefully. ' Will you come now to his room ? He sits always in the library, and has his bed in the little parlour off it.' * Very well,' said Fergus, rising readily, his heart beginning to beat with a little nervousness at the prospect of seeing his uncle. So the two went down-stairs again side by side, but never speaking a word. Even in these early days they looked a handsome, well-matched pair, the ruddy lace, blue eyes, and yellow hair of Fergus contrasting well with Sheila's dark loveli- ness. She was yet in her unformed girlhood, in spite of her quiet, dignified, womanly way, but it was a girlhood full of loveliest promise. Sheila gave a low soft knock at the library door and then opened it, signifying to Fergus to remain a moment in the shadow of the doorway, till she should announce his presence. The sombre, dismal appearance of the room, with all its comforts, chilled Fergus Macleod, it seemed to speak so loudly of a man's broken hopes and retirement from the world. In the big old red leather chair close to the gleaming hearth sat Macdonald, a feeble old man. ' Dear papa, have you had your dinner ? ' Sheila asked, and when she reached his side, she smoothed his grey hair back from his forehead with her white soft hand. 'Yes, such as it was. What is it, Sheila ? ' ' I have brought some one to see you some one who loves you very much. It is Fergus. Come in, Fergus.' Fergus came forward, and his eyes filled with tears as he extended his hand to his uncle. ' How are you, Uncle Graham ? We have not seen each other for a long time.' UNCLE GRAHAM. 143 'No.' Macdonald's keen eye scanned the boy with a look which would have read his soul. It seemed to question his sincerity, and his object in coining to Dalmore. ' What do you want, lad ? Something, I'll be bound, or you would not be here.' The tone was not harsh, but it implied distrust and sus- picion, which Fergus keenly felt. Sheila, conscious of it too, slipped away out of the room. ' I wanted to see you, Uncle Graham. Oh, how changed you are I Surely you are very ill.' 'They say I have no ailment, and that young doctor who has come to Dunkeld told me yesterday that it was a sin for me to sit here, and that if I had only the desire I might be quite well. It was an honest advice, but the young man does not know. You have grown. What are you about now ? ' Macdonald was intimately acquainted with the whole way of life at Shonnen, and knew every movement made by his sister and her son, thanks to Mr. Angus M'Bean, but it pleased him to question Fergus himself. 'I am going away to the college in Edinburgh on Monday, Uncle Graham, to study for my degree.' ' Ah, are we to see you in the pulpit in Amulree Kirk yet, then?' 'No, not that degree. I'll never make a minister,' said Fergus quickly. ' Then what are ye to make of yourself ? ' asked the old man, bending his brows keenly on the boy's face. ' I don't know yet, Uncle Graham. I daresay I shall get something to do,' said Fergus bravely, though his heart was full to bursting. Never had his uncle received him so coldly, and treated him with such scornful harshness. What did it mean? ' And what's your mother saying to it now ? ' 'Nothing; she knows I am not to be a minister at any rate.' 'Ay, perhaps she has other views,' said Macdonald drily. ' So you think me changed, boy? and why not? I am an old man, sixty-three in November.' 144 SI1E1LA. 'That is not very old, Uncle Graham. There are plenty men far older even in Achnafauld. Look at Donald M'Glashan's father, and Roddie Maclean past seventy, and William Suther- land eighty-one, and can build dykes yet,' said Fergus cheer- fully. ' So you are still sib to all the Fauld folk, and they think you a fine young fellow, no doubt, and make a hero and a martyr of you,' said Macdonald, again with that suspicious harshness which so vexed the heart of the boy, because he could not understand it. He was not yet sufficiently versed in the guile of the world to comprehend or even suspect the underhanded villainy of Angus M'Bean. He did not like the man, certainly, but had not the remotest idea of the way he had worked upon his uncle, and poisoned his mind against all truth and right. ' I have always gone back and forward to the Fauld, Uncle Graham, more since the winter I went to Peter Crerar's school,' he said in surprise. ' I was there to-day. They are in a sad way at the Fauld. Do you know about them?' 4 What about them ? ' 'That they are so hardly dealt with, they are thinking of leaving the place.' ' Let them go I an ungrateful pack ! let them go ! and a good riddance,' said Macdonald fiercely. 'Their greed and their idleness surpasses anything, and makes the blood boil. Their pockets are lined with gold, they have bank accounts in Crieff and Aberfeldy bigger than mine, but they have a pauper's soul, every man among them.' Fergus was terrified at the violence of his uncle's anger, and sat silent. ' Of course you are on their side. I have heard of you, though you have kept wisely away from Dalmore, Fergus. You are young, and easily imposed upon, and so .are to be excused. The Fauld cottars are like the daughters of the horseleech. They have but one cry, and that is, Give 1 I have given them of my substance, potatoes for their seed, and for- given them arrears, while they fed their beasts on my pastures UNCLE GRAHAM. 145 and burned my peats, and laughed in my face. That good servant and faithful friend, Angus M'Bean, has opened my eyes, and now I know them for what they are. And 1 never beard better news than that they are going off to this new- fangled country, because there they'll learn the lesson they richly deserve.' Fergus was silent still. In face of these remarks, delivered with an intensity which too clearly indicated the strength of his uncle's conviction, he felt it useless to say a word. He had not, indeed, anything ready to reply, though he felt in his inmost soul the untruth and injustice of the opinions expressed. It was only since Angus M'Bean had begun to grind the cottars under his rule that they had uttered a complaint. He had taken the loch fishing from them, and the hill pasture, and had even threatened to levy a tax on the peat mosses. And though these privileges, which had been theirs from time immemorial, had been wrested from them, the rents were maintained and even added to when any tack ran out, and not a penny would he spend in repairing the miserable homesteads and outhouses in the place. It was not to be expected that the cottars, being but human, could bear these things in silence. No doubt they had their faults : some of them were lazy, and believed in getting as much as possible for their money, but they were in the main honest, hard-working, unoffending folk, who did their duty as they knew how. But Angus M'Bean had tried them beyond their endurance, and they had rebelled. ' I have found out the mistake of small holdings, Fergus Macleod. The actual money counted up may amount to more than the rental of big farms, but the privileges the cottars get soon eat up the profits. Before I die, there will be a change on the lands of Findowie and Dalmore, and whoever comes after me will be spared the cottar pest.' Fergus sat silent still. He thought of many things to say, but seemed to be tongue-tied. His uncle's keen eyes never fur a moment left his face. He saw disapproval in its expression, and it irritated him, even more than openly expressed contra- diction. * Yon are young, Fergus, as I said, and easily imposed upon. 10 146 SHEILA. Although you may never have land to look after, you may be in the way when a good advice will be of use. Treat all men as enemies till you prove them friends, and even then trust them no further than you see them. You are disapproving what I say. Some day you will remember it, and know I was right. Now, what did you come here for to-night ? ' 'I came,' said Fergus boldly, then turning his fearless blue eyes on his uncle's face, ' to tell you how Angus M'Bean oppresses the folk. He is a wicked and cruel man, and he tells lies about them to you. You can be angry if you like, Uncle Graham ; I know I am speaking the truth.' ' Ay, ay ! it is but as Angus said. He is a shrewd man. Did ye not come up, Fergus, to see whether I was near my end ? Are ye hungering after the place, like your neighbours in theFauld?' Young though he was, Fergus Macleod understood and keenly felt the insinuation his uncle made. He sprang up, the ruddy colour deepening on his face, and turned about without a word to seek the door. He had his hot temper too, and was easily roused to anger. ' Come back, ye whelp ! that touches ye on the sore bit,' said Macdonald, grimly enjoying the boy's discomfiture. ' Come back and sit down. Be honest now, Fergus Macleod. Have ye not begun to think what fine things you would do were you Laird of Dalmore ? ' * Uncle Graham, I'm going away home. Good-night,' said Fergus quietly. 'What are ye greetin' for, ye big bairn? I would like ye none the less were ye to tell me honestly. It's but what I expect,' said Macdonald gruffly, yet with more real kindness than he had yet shown. ' What are ye looking at now?' 'At that,' said Fergus, pointing with his forefinger to a portrait of his uncle's wife which hung above the fireplace, and which he never remembered having seen before. Graham Macdonald's eye followed the lad's gesture and glance, and his head fell down upon his breast. If Angus UNCLE GRAHAM. 147 M'Bean had only known it, the sweet pathetic mouth and the mild eyes of that speaking likeness were the strongest barrier in the way of his high-handed dealing with the people. Ay, had the mistress of Dalmore but lived, there had been better days for the people of Achnufauld. ' Leave me, boy, just now,' said Macdonald at length, while Fergus stood irresolute at the door, bis heart yearning over his uncle. * Come again when you are at Shonnen ; Sheila likes to see you.' And with that Fergus had to be content. He had no heart to go back to the drawing-room, but Sheila, listening for his step, came running down to say good-bye. 'Are you not coming up a little while, Fergus?' she asked timidly. 4 No ; my mother will wonder why I have been so long. Good-bye, Sheila ; I hope you will like the boarding-school.' ' I don't think I shall,' she said, as she gave him her hand. Poor bairns ! they were both miserable, they did not know why. ' You'll come back a fine lady, Sheila, who has forgotten all about her old chum,' said Fergus. 4 No, no, I won't. Oh, Fergus Macleod, I wish the days we used to fish in the Girron Burn, you and Colin and me, could come back, I am so lonely up here by myself.' ' You have Uncle Graham and Puddin' M'Bean,' said Fergus, with a kind of subdued viciousness which gave his feelings immense relief. Then, though her eyes were wet, a peal of laughter broke from Sheila's lips which woke a thousand sweet echoes through the quiet house. 'You might give me a kiss for Colin's sake,' said Fergus in a queer, shy way. ' We won't likely see each other for a long time.' ' I'll kiss you for your own sake, Fergus,' said Sheila frankly and sweetly, and without a shade of embarrassment. In many things she was but a child still. It was many a long day before they kissed each other again. CHAPTER XVI. MOTHER AND SON. He mast gain his end Although in gaining he offend Or even sacrifice a friend. J. B. SELKIRK. HE years had dealt very gently with Ellen Macleod. She had not much to trouble her in her house of Shonnen. Her means were sufficient for her needs, and Fergus was her only anxiety. She had trained him to strict obedience, and had hitherto had no reason to com- plain of him. He had gone to Perth, and shared Puddin' M'Bean's lodging without saying a word, though he felt it keenly. The close intimacy of that semi-home life had not at all increased Fergus Macleod's liking for the cowardly boy who had made himself so obnoxious to the Fauld bairns. But he stifled these feelings, and did his best to get along comfortably with Angus when they were at school. Angus, who had a wholesome memory of the smart punish- ment Fergus had twice inflicted upon him, left him in peace. But though the boys ate, and learned, and slept together, they were in no sense of the word chums, and it was a mistake to put them together. That trial, one of no ordinary kind for Fergus, was now past, and his college days promised fairer than those he had spent at school. He need not see anything of Puddin' unless he liked, and that was something. Ellen Macleod MOTHER AND SON. 149 had not relinquished the hope of seeing Fergus a minister yet, though she had learned to hold her peace about it. She had also another hope, of which she said even less. The only person to whom she spoke of it with any freedom was Angus M'Bean, the factor. That astute individual was playing a double game, which in the end would result in his own dis- comfiture. In the meantime, however, he was flourishing like the proverbial green bay tree. The house of Auchloy had been enlarged and adorned until it looked more like a small mansion than a farmer's abode. Mrs. M'Bean had now her cook and housemaid, with whom, poor body, she had but a sorry time. A drawing-room furnished in green satin and adorned by numerous white starched tidies and woollen mats was at once the anxiety and the pride of her life. Then the two Miss M'Beans were being educated at a select school in Perth, from which they would shortly return, full of airs, if not of graces, to further exercise the spirit of their plain but truly good-hearted mother. Had Mrs. M'Bean not stood in mortal terror of her spouse, she would have given him a piece of her mind about his dealings with the peasantry, of which she did not at all approve. Her sympathies were entirely with her old neighbours in the Fauld, and she gave them many substantial expressions of it out of her husband's knowledge. It was half-past seven that night when Fergus opened the garden gate at Shonnen. He had walked round by the road and across the Amulree Bridge, the night being too dark for him to cross the Braan by the stepping-stones. He had not hurried on his way, however, being engrossed by his own thoughts. There were many things weighing on the boy's mind and heart. ' You are very late, Fergus,' his mother said, in her habitually severe voice. Fergus could certainly not associate anything bright with his mother. She still wore the repulsive head- dress which, as a child, had frightened him, the only alteration being that she had cut off the long crape which used to hang down her back. * Oh, mother, I am very sorry I I hope you did not wait,' cried Fergus in his quick way, the spread table reminding him of tea. 150 SHEILA. ' Of coarse I waited. Ring the bell for Jessie Mackenzie to bring in the teapot, and tell me where you have been.' Tea was still on the table in the dining-room, and his mother severely sitting by the fire waiting. Fergus was so accustomed to be cross-examined, and to give a minute account of his doings, that he thought nothing of it. ' I was at the Fauld, mother, seeing all the old people. Jenny Menzies can't stand or walk now with her rheumatism. But Katie is a great help. Mother, you wouldn't know Katie Menzies now, she is such a bonnie girl.' ' Seeing I never saw her, I don't suppose I should,' said Ellen Macleod drily. ' You know who she is, though, mother,' said Fergus, with his mouth full. 'And Malcolm is quite a man. Then I saw Rob Macnaughton, and that was alL Oh, mother, just think 1 The folks are speaking about emigrating, of going away to America, actually. Isn't it fearful ? ' * What's set them to think of that?' asked Ellen Macleod quietly, though she knew the whole affairs of the Fauld better than Fergus could tell her. It was long since she had heard the emigration rumour. ' Oh, the shameful way they are treated by Angus M'Bean ' cried Fergus hotly. 'You wouldn't believe how they are treated. Do you know, mother, there is hardly a horse or a cow in the Fauld now, and not a sheep? The hill pasture is taken from them. It's perfectly abominable the way Angus M'Bean is doing, and the worst of it all is, that he has made Uncle Graham believe they are to blame. Mother, I do think he is a horrid, bad, greedy man.' ' So they've stuffed your head finely for you at the Fauld,' said Ellen Macleod, with that curious smile of hers, which was no smile at all. ' Did you never hear that every story has two sides, Fergus ? ' 'Oh, I know, but anybody can see whose side is right. Mother, how can they make a living and pay their rents ofl these little crofts, when they've nothing to feed a beast on ? ' 'They wouldn't say anything about their spinning and weaving. Go up to Tirchardie Mill when you've time, Fergus, MOTHER AND SON. 151 and see what Walter Lachlan has to say about the Fauld folks and their earnings.' 'But, mother, they can't spin and weave when they've no wool, nor sheep to clip ? ' maintained Fergus hotly. 'They spin flax yet, though.' ' Yes, but if they grow flax on their crofts, they can't grow corn and potatoes,' said Fergus shrewdly. 'Oh, mother, you know I am right, and it's a cruel shame the way they are treated that's what I think.' ' Were you anywhere else than the Fauld, then ? I thought you had maybe gone up to Auchloy to your tea.' '0 no, thank you! I've seen plenty of Pud din'; and his sisters are awful, mother. You should hear their fine English,' said Fergus, with boyish candour. ' But I've been up at Dalmore.' 'At Dalmore !' Ellen Macleod's brow darkened. 'What were you doing there ? ' * I went to see Uncle Graham.' ' And did you see him ? ' she asked, her curiosity getting the better of her annoyance. ' Yes, I saw him.' ' Is it true he is as ill as they say ? ' 'Mother, I don't think Uncle Graham will live long,' said Fergus, and his lips quivered. Memory was faithful in the boy's true heart. The sad changes the years had wrought could not destroy his old-time confidence, his old-time love for Uncle Graham. ' What did he say to you?' 'Not very much. He does not care about me now, I tnink,' said Fergus, in a low, uncertain voice, for there was a lump in his throat. 'Did yuu think he would? ' asked his mother, in bitter scorn. ' Your day is past, my lad. Did you see the girl, his daughter, as he calls her ? ' Yes, I saw Sheila.' 'It is she who has turned your uncle against you, and who has supplanted you in Dalmore.' 'I don't care for that. I don't believe it. I like Sheila. 152 SHEILA. She is as different from Bessie and Kate M'Bean as night from day. I never saw a nicer girl in my life than Sheila, and I'm very sorry for her. She is miserable up in that lonely house. 1 ' Boy, you have a craven spirit. How will you look when your uncle is carried to Shian, and that chit is lady of Dalmore ? ' ' I don't know,' said Fergus, in a low voice. ' She will be kind to the people, anyway. She won't believe all Angus M'Bean tells her.' ' Fergus Macleod, you have a causeless resentment against Angus M'Bean, who is your true friend and mine,' said Ellen Macleod, in a low, impressive voice. ' You are sixteen and a half years old, and should understand things now, so I shall speak plainly to you. Angus M'Bean is doing his utmost to work against the influence that girl and the Murrays have over your uncle. I don't blame her much as yet, for she is young ; but the Murrays are doing their utmost to get your uncle to make her his heiress, and if they succeed, you will be a nameless beggar on the face of the earth.' ' Oh, mother, I am not a beggar just now. I shall not be any worse off then, shall I?' asked Fergus, not greatly impressed by his mother's speech. ' Boy, you make me think shame for you,' she cried, growing whil;e with passion. * Have you no ambition for yourself? Will you be perfectly well pleased to see Sheila Murray and her horde of relatives ruling in Dalmore. Your heritage ! What right have they with it? If Graham Macdonald wilfully passes over his own kindred at the last, a curse will dwell upon Dalmore. I will invoke it if none else will.' Ah, Ellen Macleod! it is long since your evil resentment cursed Dalmore. By the memory of her who sleeps in the old graveyard at Shian, spare the innocent bairn who never did you harm. ' Mother, I suppose Uncle Graham can do what he likes with his own,' said Fergus wearily. 'I would like very well to be Laird of Dalmore, for I like the place better than any place in the world. But I'm not going to beg for it, nor seek to turn Sheila out. If you knew Sheila, mother, you would feel the MOTHER AND SON. 153 same as me. I can work for my living, and keep yon and myself, too, yet ; wait till you see.' These words were more bitter than gall to the proud, ambitious heart of Ellen Macleod. She almost hated the boy for his lack of spirit, not knowing, poor blind creature, that he was showing a noble, generous, unselfish spirit a king might have envied. With all her harsh training, she had not been able to warp or curb that pure soul, which had a heritage greater and more to be desired than any earthly estate. She rose from her seat and flounced out of the room, leaving Fergus perplexed and more miserable than ever. He drew in a chair to the fire and sat down to think over what his mother had said, but his reverie was soon broken by a hard knock at the front door. When he heard Angus M'Bean's voice asking for his mother, he rose up hurriedly and ran off up-stairs to his own little room, feeling that he could not bear to meet the factor just then. He shut the door and sat down by the window, and, leaning his head on his hand, looked out away across by Amulree, to where a bonnie moon was rising above Crom Creagh. Its light did not as yet touch Dalmore, but he knew the exact spot where the house stood, and he had no need of light to guide his eyes to it. Ay, the lad loved Dalmore with a great love, and he knew that to call it his home, and to have in his hand the welfare of the folk among whom he had been reared, would be the happiest destiny he could ask on earth. But though he knew that there was a grain of truth in what his mother had said, and that Sheila stood between him and Dalmore, it made no difference in his feeling towards her. They had been bairns together, all in all to each other in the long days of that first beautiful summer when they had made acquaintance first, and the tie of bairnly love is one which is not easily severed. It would take even more than separation from Dalmore to break the sweet spell of the old trysts by the Girron Brig. He heard Angus M'Bean go into the dining- room and his mother join him there ; then the door was shut, and only the subdued murmur of voices indicated that they were in conversation. Ellen Macleod was always courteous to Angus M'Bean, and 154 SHEILA. believed him to be her true friend, while he was only seeking to serve his own ends. He knew the Laird was failing daily, and as he had as yet no idea what were his intentions regarding his property and estate, it behoved him to keep on good terms with both Shonnen and Dalmore. He hoped, however, for his own sake, that Sheila was to be the heiress. A weak, inexperienced girl would be much more easily dealt with than Ellen Macleod and her high-spirited, generous-minded boy. If Fergus Mac- leod ever became Laird of Dalmore, Angus M'Bean had a good guess that his own day would be over. Therefore it behoved him to make hay while the sun shone. ' A fine night, but cold. Winter will be upon us before we know where we are,' said the factor, as he shook hands with Mrs. Macleod. ' It's a winter moon that's up to-night.' 'Is it? Fergus has just come in. Excuse the table. Will you have a cup of tea ? ' 'No, thank you; just come from it. We have a lively house just now with Angus and the girls. They are aye squabbling, and the piano goes from morning till night,' said the factor rather proudly. ' I don't know what the wife and I will do next week when the young folks leave us.' 'Are your daughters going back to school? They will be quite accomplished young ladies,' said Ellen Macleod, not with- out a touch of amused scorn. She was often amused at the conceits of the factor, and certainly thought his ideas above his position. ' They are smart girls. I own, and I'm expecting Angus to do great things at college. I hope he and Mr. Fergus will con- tinue to be friendly, and to keep each other out of bad company.* 'I am not afraid of my son,' said Ellen Macleod rather haughtily. 'He has been up at Dalmore seeing his uncle to-night.' 'Has he? And what how did they get on?' asked the factor nervously, not at all sure about what might have been the meaning or issue of the interview. 'The boy was grieved to see his uncle so ill. He thinks him dying. Is the Laird so far spent, Mr. M'Bean ? ' MOTHER AND SON. 155 'I I really can't tell. Of course I am seeing him often. Of course he is weak, but that young Doctor Culbard, who has come to Dunkeld, a clever fellow they say, actually told me yesterday, the Laird had not a single ailment, and that he might live twenty years yet, if he would only make up his mind to do it. But I myself don't think, Mrs. Macleod, that he will last as many weeks.' 'Mr. M'Bean,' said Ellen Macleod, with a slight hesitation (for she had her own pride, and it sometimes reminded her that it was scarcely fit that she should discuss family matters with a servant), ' have you ever heard the Laird say aught about Dalmore ? Is it likely he will leave the place to Alastair Murray's child ? ' ' The Lord forbid ! ' said the factor quickly. ' There is no doubt that she will get a good slice of it Findowie, perhaps. He was suggesting to me something about repairing the old house on it. But he'll never pass by Mr. Fergus, his own flesh and blood.' ' Has he ever spoken about it to you at all ? ' ' Well, no, not exactly ; but, of course, I can see his drift,' said the factor, not choosing to confess that he was as com- pletely ignorant of Macdonald's intentions as Ellen Macleod herself. ' Well, it would be a sin and a shame ; but mark me, Angus M'Bean, it would not greatly surprise me. Fergus is in a terrible way about this talk of emigration in the Fauld.' ' I knew he would be. He's got a soft heart, and they've got round him completely. Some day I expect Mr. Fergus will thank me for ridding Dalmore of these discontented cottars. They are a great toil and anxiety. I'm getting my blessings in Achnafauld just now, Mrs. Macleod. They're all on my tap, and they've even threatened me with bullets, to say nothing of Ewan M'Fadyen's lang-nebbit maledictions, which are fear- some to listen to. I hope the emigration craze will only hold. There's one nest I would like cleaned out among the rest, and that's the Menzies's. That Malcolm's no* canny. Were he in the town, he would be in an asylum.' ' Fergus is especially fond of the Menzies's,' said Ellen Mac- 156 SHEILA. leod, with a slight smile. ' I do not comprehend the boy. He has not a soul above the affairs of the common folk. He would rather sit an hour with the stocking -weaver than be Laird of Dalmore.' 'He's but a lad. Edinburgh will bring him to his level,' said the factor knowingly. 'Take my word for it, Mrs. Mac- leod, he'll meet the gentry in Edinburgh, and learn to be proud of his mother's folks. I'm no' feared for Mr. Fergus being able to uphold his position in Dalmore ; and he'll change his ideas, too, about the Fauld folk.' ' He is their enthusiastic advocate in the meantime, at any rate. None of the lawyers have ever been at Dalmore that you know of, then ? ' 'No; and Maggie Macintosh, that was with my wife at Auchloy, and is kitchen-maid at Dalmore, brings all the news. I'll let ye ken, ma'am, whatever happens. I'm yours and Mr. Fergus's humble servant, and I hope to see ye yet where ye should be, and should aye hae been,' said the factor, in his blandest mood. Strange that Ellen Macleod should believe in the sincerity of such a man. In the wide world, Angus M'Bean of Auchloy would serve but one master, and that was Self. CHAPTER XVIL CHUMS. A boy's will is the wind's will, And the thoughts of youth are long, long thoughts. LONGFELLOW. ERGUS had rebelled against sharing lodgings in Edinburgh with Angus M'Bean, and so the open- ing of the University session found him domiciled alone in a small but comfortable room in the top flat of a house in Montagu Street. It seemed strange to the boy at first to be confined to so small a space, but from his window he could catch a glimpse of the corner of Arthur's Seat, and the grim outline of Salisbury Crags, and that view was the greatest comfort the Highland boy li;id in town. It reminded him of home. It must not be supposed, however, that he was at all miserable in Edinburgh. At first the change and its constant bustle were delightful to him ; there was so much to see in spare hours and on holidays, that he never wearied, even for home. He speedily made acquaintance among the students, and became very friendly with a big, good-natured lad, with a smile and a kindly eye which seemed familiar to Fergus. When he learned his name he knew at once where he had seen these eyes before. The lad was Alastair Murray, from Murrayshaugh ; and he was his mother's son. Young Murray was boarded with a very select family in Great King Street, and lived in a very 158 SHEILA. different style from Fergus ; but that did not prevent the two from becoming inseparable chums. Alastair was supposed to be studying for his degree likewise, but was too idle and easy- minded to oppress himself much with books. The lads sat side by side in the Humanity class-room, but Alastair took in very little of the learned professor's lectures. Fergus, however, did his best. He was conscientious in everything, and, as he had been sent to college to learn, he did learn. But on half- holidays and Saturdays, Alastair and he took long walks to- gether all over Edinburgh and its beautiful environs, and were as chummy and as devoted to each other as boys of that age can be. Alastair wrote home when the spirit moved him, and his letters were filled with Fergus Macleod ; and when Lady Ailsa read them, she smiled a bit quiet smile to herself, and wrote back to her boy to keep up his friendship with Fergus, and be as kind to him as possible. In her own mind she knew that old Time, the stern and just, would heap revenges on Ellen Macleod's head, and that the bairns among them, if let alone, would heal the old sores. Fergus had no sweet mother to whom he could pour out his boyish confidences. He wrote home dutifully every Saturday morning, faithfully rehearsing his week's work ; and, though he might mention that he was going for a stroll to Craigmillar Castle, or a ramble through the Pentlands, he never by any chance wrote down the name of Alastair Murray. He had an uneasy feeling that his mother would not approve of his intimacy with Lady Ailsa's son ; and yet when Alastair was such a jolly fellow, to whom his boyish affection went out, how could he cast him off? So the winter went by, and cemented yet more closely the tie of friendship between them. Each was utterly devoted to the other, and each believed the other the best fellow in the world. At Christmas, Alastair Murray went home, but Fergus had to remain over the holidays in town. The journey was long and expensive ; besides, the world about Amulree in the latter end of December was shut in by drifts, which were no mean rivals to the hills themselves. The hawthorn bloom had been thick and white in Strathbraan all through the summer, and the haws ruddy on the boughs later on, and they had not belied their CHUMS. 159 promise of a snowy Christmas. So Fergus wandered about the town in the holidays, thinking how ugly it looked, with iu tiampled snow and smoky, murky atmosphere, and thought of the wild beauties of Amulree, of the tender outlines of the wreaths in the roads, and even pictured the wild winds swirling the drifts in Glen Lochan like an unseen hand stirring a witch's cauldron. The wee glen at the head of Loch Fraochie was a fearsome place in a snowstorm, Fergus knew. He went often to the Queen's Park to slide on the lochs, and thought them mean in comparison with his own Fraochie, which all the winter through was a vast curling-ground. He was glad when the recess was over, and the students came back to town. Alastair was not at college or the first day, but next morning, when Fergus was walking briskly up and down the quadrangle at lunch-time, he felt Alastair's big hand slap him on the back. 1 Hulloa, Fergie I ' ' Hulloa ! got back, Alastair ? ' said Fergus heartily. Then they linked arms, and went round and round the quadrangle to exchange news. Of course Alastair had the most to give, for Lady Ailsa always made Christmas a happy time for her boys, and grudged them no enjoyment. 1 Oh, I say, Fergie, there's an awful din going on up at your place,' said Alastair suddenly. ' The folks have all left their farms, and they're going off to America. I heard them talking about it at home.* Instantly Fergus was breathlessly interested. Though his mother wrote to him regularly, she never mentioned anything about the Fauld folks, nor any matters connected with the estate. ' Are they going soon ? Tell me all about it, Alastair, quick 1 ' 1 Oh, I don't know much. But surely your uncle has a mean sneak of a fellow for a factor. Hasn't he put them out ? I thought my mother said that.' ' He's helped anyway. Yes, he's a mean sneak,' said Fergus gloomily, but with an angry flash of his eye. 'But they can't go over the Atlantic just now.' 160 SHEILA. ' Why not ? I think they are going just now ; at least, they're out of their places.' 'Well, but it is Upper Canada they are going to, and the ships can't get up the St. Lawrence for the ice,' said Fergus. ' If they are out of their farms, where are they living? ' ' Oh, I don't know. Doesn't your mother tell you all that sort of things when she writes? Mine does.' ' She didn't tell me anything about this. Oh, Alastair, 1 wish I could get home ! ' said Fergus, in a tone of such painful inquiry that Alastair looked at him iu amazement. What for, Fergie ? ' 'To see what's going on. It'll be April before I'm home, and if they're all away I don't know what I'll do.' ' But how does it matter to you ? You aren't the Laird,' said Alastair, in rather a perplexed voice. ' No ; but I like all these folks. There's Donald M'Glashan, and old Dugald, and Eob Macnaughton, only I don't think he'll be going. I wish I could see them, if only to say good-bye.' 'Oh, well, perhaps they won't be going till the spring, for the ice,' said Alastair, who was not very clear on that point. 'Likely they'll all be there when you get back. The session ends on the 28th of March, and jolly glad I'll be when it comes. It's not much more than two months, Fergie, so cheer up.' But Fergus was very down-hearted all day, and whenever he got home to his lodgings, he wrote a hasty letter to his mother, asking for all the news about the Fauld. In his absorbing interest about the cottars, he forgot his usual reticence regard- ing Alastair, and just wrote down that he had brought the news back from Murrayshaugh. Ellen Macleod had herself to blame for the way in which Fergus withheld his confidence from her. When had she encouraged it, or shown herself in the light of a sympathetic, interested friend to her boy ? She had frozen the mainsprings of his fresh, warm, impulsive young heart long ago, and could scarcely resent its lukewarmness now. Fergus knew the name of Murray was distasteful to her, and, grown worldly wise even in his young boyhood, refrained from inflict- CHUMS. 161 ing it upon her. At the expiry of a week his mother's usual letter arrived, and, though she signified her receipt of his extra epistle, she merely said that she did not concern herself with affairs which were not her own. She had noted the name of Alastair Murray, but did not take notice of it in her reply. In the heat of his disappointment and eager desire to know really what was going on in Achnafauld, Fergus sat down and indited a hasty, boyish screed to Rob Macnaughton, the stocking-weaver, asking him to send him a long letter telling all that had transpired in the Fauld since he left the Glen. That letter Rob Macnaughton treasured among his most precious documents till his dying day. In a day or two there came back an answer, written in rather a cramped, unsteady hand, no less a personage than Ewan M'Fadyen, the precentor, having taken it upon himself to reply on behalf of Rob, who was confined to his bed with rheumatism, and could not hold the pen in his stiff fingers. Rheumatism was a common complaint in Achnafauld in the winter time the moist atmosphere, and the low-lying, damp situation of the houses, accounted for it. This letter of Ewan's, written in his most grandiloquent style, is quite worthy of publication. Fergus kept it long in his possession as a curiosity, and I am not sure but that it is still extant among the papers in the library at Dalmore. ACHNAFAULD, GLENQUAICH, AMULREE, BT DUNKELD, The 16th day of January, Eighteen hundred and forty-eight, Anno Domini. To Mr. Fergus Macleod, at the College, in Edinburgh. RESPECTED SIR, I am organized by my disabled friend, Mr. Robert Mac- naughton, to indite a suitable and permanent reply to your honoured communication anent the agitation which has shooken this hamlet, nay, this entire glen, from east or west, to its solid foundation. This I will make it my endeavour to do to the utmost of my tolerable ability, and do but prefer a humble request that a student of so great and philosophical a college will be pleased to overlook and pass by any slight deviation from the straight equili brium of grammatical correctness, li 1 6a SHEILA. , Rob Macnaughton, being in haste, requests me not to dissipate your attention with ray fine language, which, I confess, I am a master of, but I take it upon me to venture the supposition that even in my finest style I shall hardly be equal to the occasion. I will endeavour, however, in acquiescence with Rob's desire, to inform you briefly what the facts of this interesting case are, as follows, viz. : That the following responsible heads of households vk.: James Stewart, formerly of Turrich ; Alexander Maclean, cottar in Achnaf auld ; Thomas Macnaughton, do. do. Rory Maclean, do. do. William Crerar, do. do. Donald Macalpine, do. and blacksmith ; and the undersigned, viz. Ewan M'Fadyen, cottar, and also precentor, viz. leader of the praise in the kirk of Ainulree, have resolved and determined in a solemn league and covenant, on account of the oppression and incidence of that upstart and contemptible truckler, Angus M'Bean in Auchloy, to turn our respective backs upon the land of our birth and breeding, and cross the seas to a new and unexplored region which knows not Joseph, and this our families have agreed to, and it is our fixed intention to shake the dust from off our feet in the spring-time, that vernate season when all nature rejoices, except ourselves, and with every symptom of respect to Mr. Fergus Macleod, His humble servant, EWAN M'FADYEN. The close of Ewan's epistle bore unmistakeable traces of haste. Rob, indeed, had lost patience with his scribe's verbosity, and had thrown a book at his head. But, in spite of the long words and fine-sounding phrases, the meaning was perfectly clear. It was indeed clear that Angus M'Bean had succeeded in completely souring the small tenants in Dalmore. And they, foreseeing no prospect of any betterment in their situation, had wisely resolved to gird up their loins while they had yet a little left in their wallets, and seek a home in that distant land of which such good reports had reached their Now that he knew the worst, Fergus felt more contented, although wearying to get home to hear fuller particulars. He had seen Puddin' M'Bean several times in Edinburgh, hut did not consort at all with him. Alastair Murray, who, in CHUMS. 163 spite of his good-nature, had a pride of his own, declined to stand on any footing with the factor's son at Auchloy. That red-haired fellow from Glenquaich did not find favour in the eyes of handsome, high-born Alastair Murray. The brief spring session passed at length, and on the 28th of March Fergus Macleod returned home. Alastair, Angus M'Bean, and he travelled by the same train. The Highland line was being formed, and had now reached Ballinluig, so that the lads got home all the way to Dunkeld by train. The factor's smart dogcart was in waiting for young Angus, the factor himself driving. 'Hulloa! how are you, Mr. Fergus? Jump up,' said the factor familiarly, when Fergus came off the platform. But, to his amazement, Fergus only gave him a haughty little nod. 'No, thank you, I'm going to walk. Here's your trap, Alastair,' he said, turning away from the M'Beans and speak- ing to his friend. ' But, Mr. Fergus, Mrs. Macleod said I was to bring you up,' said the factor. * Come.' 'No, thank you,' repeated Fergus. 'Tell my mother I'm walking, and that I'll be up before it's dark.' ' All right,' said Angus M'Bean, trying to speak pleasantly, though he was very angry. 'He's trying to show off before young Murrayshaugh, but I'll take it out of him,' he added to his son. ' In with you, Angus, and let's off.' ' You can't walk all that distance, Fergie,' said Alastair, in concern. 'Come on home with me, and you'll get Dick's pony.' 'O no, Alastair. Ten miles! I'll walk that in two hours and a half easily,' cried Fergus cheerily. ' Good-bye ; I hope we'll see each other in the holidays.' ' See each other ! of course. If the weather keeps like this, there'll be some rare fishing in the Logie. Of course you'll come over for a few days. My mother will settle all that.' So they shook hands and parted, Alastair to drive rapidly home to the hearty, loving welcome of Murrayshaugh, and Fergus to trudge manfully up the brae and through Strath- 1 64 SHEILA. braan to Anmlree. The Laird's nephew walked afoot, carrying his bag, while the L; ird's factor covered the miles with the fleet thoroughbred for which the spoil of the cottars had paid. The brief soreness Fergus had felt at the station soon wore off, and he began to take interest in what was about him. Never had the green and lovely Athole woods seemed so pass- ing fair as they did that April day, to the country boy whose eyes had grown weary of the town. He turned back again and again to look at the rugged face of Craigybarns, which was clothed with the rich mosaic of her spring- tide hues. The green banks of the noble Tay were like finest emerald velvet, and the river itself flashed and rippled in the sunlight, till its beauty filled the boy's whole soul. He was neither an artist nor a poet, but he felt it all in his soul, and loved the land of his birth better than anything in the world. He had to stop at one part of the road and look away up the glen past Dalguise and Dowally to the green braes of Tullymet and the purple hills in the distance, a picture whose marrow he had never seen. He saw the trouts leaping in the gleaming pools in the Braan, which were shaded by the drooping birch trees and the golden tassels of the larches, and his young heart leaped too, for the world was a lovely world, and life was all before him. So on he trudged past Trochrie, and on to Drumour and Tomnagrew, where the landscape grew more bare and treeless, though not less beautiful in the eyes of Fergus Macleod. When he got up to the crest of the brae by Dalreoch, he saw Crom Creagh, and the sunset shafts of golden light falling athwart the windows of Dalmore. Then he dashed his hand across his eyes, for they were wet. God guide the boy 1 he had an earnest heart, and already he had been sorely tried. Just then he met Tom Macnaughton, the blind piper, dressed in his kilt, away to play at a marriage in Ballinreich, and of course he had to stand and crack a bit with him, for the piper knew the lad's foot before he came up. It was about eight o'clock, and, the sun being down, a soft golden haze enveloped the whole glen, when Fergus Macleod laid his hand on the gate of Shonnen. He felt no thrill of delight as he did so, for he had no love for the place, nor had it ever possessed for him any of the attrac- CHUMS. 165 tions of home. His mother was watching for him, and came out to the door to meet him with but a chilly welcome on her lips. 'Ye are a fool, Fergus, to walk the road ye might have ridden. Whether is it pride or thrawnness that makes you so sorry civil to Mr. M'Bean of Auchloy ?' CHAPTER XVIIL HOME AGAIN. The short bat simple annals of the poor. GRAY. dawn 3LLEN MACLEOD was glad to see her son, however, in spite of her scanty welcome, and when he sat down to tea her eye viewed him with keen pride. He had grown a manly fellow, and there was the manhood in his look and manner. Fergus was no longer a boy, to be chidden and ordered even by his mother. So she alluded no more to his refusal to ride up in Angus M'Bean's trap. ' Mother, what's all this about the Fauld ? ' he asked, in his quick way. ' Are they really going away ? I can't believe it.' 4 Oh, it's true enough. They go to Glasgow, I'm told, the day after to-morrow. Silly fools, they don't know when they are well off. So Lady Ailsa's son brought you the news. Are you intimate with him, Fergus ? ' * O yes ; Alastair is a splendid fellow, mother I ' said Fergus enthusiastically. ' We are the best of chums, and spend our Saturdays together, always.' 1 It seems as if you purposely made friendships and did things to vex me, Fergus. The Murrays are not your true friends. Have you forgotten that this lad and Sheila Murray are full cousins ? ' HOME AGAIN. 167 'No; but, mother, I can't make any difference. I can't always mind that people are not my friends, as you say. I like Alastair, and always will. And as for being Sheila's cousin,' he added, with a light laugh, ' we agree perfectly about her. Sheila is everybody's chum at Murrayshaugh ; but she's mine too, when she's in Amulree.' These words were bitter as gall to Ellen Macleod, but she passed them by in silence. 1 Mother, I'm going to run along to the Fauld ; I must see the old folks. I won't be more than an hour, and it is quite light yet.' ' All right ! I would not keep you from your friends,' she said, with a slight touch of scorn. ' 1 heard of the letter you wrote to the stocking- weaver. It was not wisely done, Fergus.' 'Why? Oh, mother, I had such a letter from Ewan M'Fadyen ! ' cried Fergus mirthfully. ' It is in my bag. We can see it after. It is full of the longest words you ever saw or heard of. Rob's cripple leg was bothering him, and his rheu- matic arm, so that he could not write.' 'I am not much interested in these ungrateful people,' was the cold reply. ' I want to hear about your college life. Angus M'Bean has done very well, his father tells me.' ' I know nothing about him, except that he went with fellows who could not do him any good,' said Fergus coolly. ' Of course he did not belong to our set. Puddin' soon found his level in Edinburgh College, mother. A cad is soon spotted there.' ' What do you mean by these strange, ill-bred words, Fergus ? ' 'I beg your pardon, mother. One can't help picking up a little slang. I meant to say that an ungentlemanly fellow is soon marked ; and, in spite of his fine clothes and airs, Puddin' will never be anything but just Puddin' M'Bean. How are Bessie and Kate? Do you ever see them? ' 1 Occasionally. They are well-bred girls. Angus M'Bean has credit by his family.' 'I am glad to hear it,' said Fergus carelessly. 'Oh, mother, how bonnie Amulree is looking just now, with all the green leaves on the manse trees I ' 1 68 SHEILA. Fergus said the manse trees, but he was thinking and speaking of the woods about Dalmore. ' Uncle Gr.iham is no worse, is he ? ' 'Not that I know of,' answered his mother. *Yoti won't stay late, then, if you are going. Remember, you owe a duty to me. You have been away from me more than six months.' 'And jolly glad to get home, I can tell you,' said Fergus cheerily. ' No, I won't be long. I only want to ask for Rob, and shake hands with the smith, and have a peep at Katie Menzies.' So saying, Fergus caught up his cap and ran out whistling, Ids spirits overflowing with the joy of being once more at home. He missed Colin at his heels. That faithful friend was now dead, and there was no dog at Dalmore but poor Tory, who in his old age had grown very dyspeptic, and consequently was very lazy and cross. Ellen Macleod went out. to the door and watched the lad's fine figure as he marched along the stony road towards Kinloch watched him with all a mother's pride. She loved him more in his independent young manhood than she had loved him in his childhood. His spirit and his pride matched her own, though it was of a mellower and more beautiful type. Fergus never looked back, but strode on, with many a glance, it is true, over the moors to Dalmore, about which the grey night-shadows were gathering softly, as if in pity for the old house which was now so desolate a home. The loch was lying darkly in the shadow too, for the sunset glow never touched it ; but it was wholly beautiful in the eyes of the lad, as he stood a moment on the old bridge and watched it and the river which flowed so deep and silent and swiftly below. He could almost fancy he saw the big hungry pike darting to and fro in the gleaming depths below the bridge ; for by some strange means pike had come to Loch Fraochie, and helped to devour the trout which used to be netted for the folks who stayed over the protracted communion services at Amulree. Over the bridge and up through the grassy path went Fergus, and came upon Malcolm Menzies, working, though it was nearly dark, on the potato land, preparing it for the seed. HOME AGAIN. 169 * Hullo, Malky I here I am again. No holidays for you, my boy, eh ? Do you ever give yourself a rest ? ' * I dinna need it. I'm best workin' hard. It keeps me doon, as Katie says,' said Malcolm, as he stood up, his face all aglow with pleasure at sight of his old companion and defender. ' You are looking much bigger and stronger, Malky. How's Katie?' Katie's fine.' * And Aunt Jenny, eh ? ' 1 Fine too, though she canna rise noo, nor help hersel*.' ' So you are to lose a lot of your neighbours, Malky ? The Fauld will be dull enough without them all.' ' Ay ; but I'm gled Rob Macnaughton has a cripple leg.' ' To keep him at home,' laughed Fergus. ' You and Katie are not going either. I'm very glad.' 'I wad gang if it werena for Katie, Mr. Fergus,' said Malcolm, with a curious gleam in his eye. 4 There's whiles I canna bide here hardly. The factor's aye meddlin' wi' me. He says I canna ferm the land, but I see weel eneuch he's wan tin' us oot o' this Fauld an' a'.' ' Never mind him, Malky ; he can't put you out unless you are willing to go.' * I dinna ken. He says he'll rise the rent, an' it's ower dear already. We've to pay for horse wark too, ye ken, an' that disna pay. Is Puddin' hame frae the college too ? ' ' Yes ; but you mustn't call him Puddin' now, Malcolm, he is such a fine young gentleman. He wears a gold finger ring and has a silver-topped cane,' said Fergus, with a laugh. ' I hope he'll bide oot o' my road,' said Malcolm, in a low voice. ' Ye'll be gaun to stop at hame for a while now ? ' 1 For a month, Malky ; but I must away over to Rob's. I see a lot o' them at the smith's. Is Donald really going away ? ' ' Ay ; and there's a man frae Findowie comin' up to the smiddy.' * Malky, if the Laird had been quite well, these things would not be,' said Fergus soberly. ' I believe the factor does things in my uncle's name which he never sanctioned.' 4 We ken that, but we'll be waur some day,' said Malky lye SHEILA. quietly, as he went back to his work. Fergus crossed over the burn and passed by Jenny's door, meaning to look in and see Katie last of all. As he neared the smiddy door, he heard a loud burst of laughter, which did not seem to indicate much heaviness of heart. It was Ewaii M'Fadyen, holding forth as usual in his solemn, bombastic style, to the great amusement of the others. Mary Macalpine, the smith's wife, looking out of the door, caught sight of Fergus. ' Here's the young Laird,' she cried, for by that title was the laddie now known in the Fauld. ' Well, how are you all ? Mary, you are looking splendid 1 ' cried Fergus, stepping across the smiddy doorstep, when he was immediately surrounded by Donald and all the rest, eager to shake him by the hand. * What were you all laughing at?' asked Fergus, when he could get breath to speak. * I thought you'd be all in very bad spirits.' 'Nay, for we are now free from the hand of the oppressor,' said Ewan solemnly ; but the tear stood in Mary Macalpine's eye, 'Tell Maister Fergus about Rory Maclean bein 1 shot in the Sma' Glen, Ewan,' said young Rob Stewart, whose father had been in Turrich. 'Tell it yourself, Eob, or you, Donald,' said Fergus to the smith. 'If Ewan begins, dear knows where he'll end. Who shot Rory ? ' ' Ay, that's it wha shot Rory ? ' replied the smith, his sides shaking with laughter. ' He was comin' thro' the sma' glen frae Crieff the ither nicht wi' his cairt. He had a bottle o' barm in his oxter, an' the heat o' his arm garred the cork flee oot wi' a lood report. It was a dark nicht, an' Rory, a muckle saft chield, as ye ken, Maister Fergus, thocht the deil was efter him, or that somebody had killed him deid wi' a gunshot. So he left the beast staunin' i' the glen, an' gaed aff on his hale legs to the shepherd's hoose at the Brig o' Newton, an' gied them a terrible fricht. He said he was mortally hurt, an' began to tell them hoo his gear was to be pairted. But the shepherd, seein* the barm rinnin' ower his leg, says, "The bluid's unco white, HOME AGAIN. 171 Rory." But it was lang or Rory was convinced he wasna killed.' 'That's a queer story, Donald,' said Fergus, laughing; 'but I'm glad you've got something to laugh at. It seems serious enough to me that you are all going away from the Fauld.' ' We've got the warst brunt ower noo, lad,' said the smith. ' That we havena, smith,' put in Ewan. ' For we have yet to plough the unknown tracts of the vasty deep, and that'll be very severe upon the equilibrium, to say nothing about our stomachs. 1 ' When do you go away from the Glen ? ' asked Fergus, paying no attention to Ewan. In serious moments, when he wanted information, he was sometimes impatient of the pre- centor's long-winded sentences. 'No' the morn, but on Wednesday mornin', Maister Fergus,' said the smith, * we'll gang oot o' the Glen four-an'-twenty souls o* us, an' a heap o' gear. We're no pretendin' we're gaun oot beggars, Maister Fergus. We are only gaun so that we'll no' be beggars. Could we hae made a leevin' ava, we wad hae bidden i' the Glen. Look at Mary there, she'll hae her een grutten oot or ever they see the last o' Glenquaich.' The smith's voice faltered too, and a silence fell upon the little company. Strong, resolute men though they were, it was no light thing for them to turn their backs on their ' bairn's- hame,' which is ever the dearest we know. ' It's just awful to think you are going away from the Fauld,' said Fergus hurriedly. * I I wish I was the Laird ; things would be different.' ' Ay, we ken that ; but ye hae gotten a lesson, Maister Fergus, an' if ye ever come to your ain, ye'll ken to live an' let live, an' no' treat folks as if they were waur than brute beasts without sense,' said the smith. 'When ye see the auld Laird, Maister Fergus, tell him we gaed oot no' blamin' him, for when he was in his health things werena ill wi' us ; but tell him we left a curse on that black imp at Auchloy, an' that Dalmore'h never prosper or he gets the road.' A shadow darkened the doorway, a face looked in, with a mocking smile. The factor himself, sneaking about to overhear i7 SHEILA. chance remarks, had got the listener's portion, though not for the first time in Achnafauld. Fergus ran out, but the factor was not to be seen. Then he crossed the road, lifted the sneck of Rob's door, and went in. ' Are ye there, Rob ? ' ' Ay, lad, I'm here ; ye are welcome as the sun in hairst. Come in ; though I'm not able to meet ye at the door.' Fergus pushed open the door of the little kitchen, and there was Rob sitting at the fire, with the deal table before him covered with bits of paper, while he had an old copybook before him and a pen behind his ear. ' Are you making poetry, Rob ? I'll disturb you.' ' Never mind. Sit down, lad ; blithe am I to see your face.' ' I'm glad to see you, too, Rob, but I'm not able to bear the folks going away. It's a terrible, terrible shame I ' The lad threw himself into a chair, and one dry, quick sob broke from his lips. A peculiar kindness gleamed in the dark eye of the stocking-weaver as it rested on the boy's bent head. ' Ay, lad, this is but the beginnin' o' the desolation of which I spoke to you before,' he said. ' There's nobody coming to fill the places of them that's going away, save the smiddy, so you can imagine what like the place will be a rickle o' empty hooses where the beasts o' the field can shelter, but where human foot doesna enter. I'm no* tired o' life, Fergus Macleod, but I have no desire to live to see the complete doonfa' o' Achnafauld.' ' What's to become of the land, then, Rob ? ' ' Ye need hardly ask. The big feck o't gangs in wi' Auchloy,' said Rob, dropping his more poetical language, and speaking sharply to the point. ' Then Turrich and Little Turrich are let thegither wi' some o' the crofts at Kinloch. But I jalouse Angus M'Bean is waitin' or the folk be safely awa or he shows his haund.' ' It's a sad business. It just makes me miserable,' said Fergus, rising wearily. ' I must go home, for I promised to my mother not to stay long. Til be along to-morrow, Rob. Good-bye just now.' 'Mr. Fergus,' said the stocking- weaver, 'I dinna want to push my nose into the affairs o' my betters, but they say the HOME AGAIN. 173 auld Laird's a deein' man, an' I Avad but advise ye to try an' look efter yer ain. I ken yer pride, my lad, but there's whiles we hae to pit doon a firm foot on pride to dae what's richt. Gang you up to Dalmore, an' see what's what, an' see there's nae writin' dune up there that shouldna be. Angus M'Bean is never oot o' Dalmore, an' there'll maybe be mair come o'd than you or yours wad like..' ' Everything's all wrong, Rob,' said Fergus hopelessly, shaking his head as he went out by the door. His face brightened a little at sight of Katie, bonnie and winsome as of yore, filling the water-pitchers at the well, and when he went up to her he had even a light, jesting word to greet her. Katie was glad and pleased to see him. She was grateful to him for his kind way with Malcolm, who had so few friends. They stood but a few minutes, talking, of course, about the one absorbing subject of interest in the clachan ; then, bidding her good-night, and refusing her invitation to come in and see her aunt, he turned up the path to the road which skirted the south side of the loch. Just at the turn he met young Angus, with his hands in his pockets, puffing away at a cigar, with all the airs of a foolish boy who thought himself a man. To be sure, Angus was now in his twentieth year, and so, perhaps, was justified in thinking himself quite grown-up. But he had no more than a boy's sense. ' Hulloa, Fergus, you know where the village belles are to be found,' he said offensively. ' Quite a picture, 'pon my word. Jacob at the well sort of thing.' 1 Puddin 1 , you are a perfect idiot,' said Fergus hotly. The very idea of such a thing in connection with Katie Menzies was too absurd. ' Oh, of course, a fellow always is when he tramps on another fellow's toes. I must be down to see the sweet Katie ; a pretty girl, 'pon honour. She is a regular rustic beauty. Ah, that'll put up your monkey. You have a sneaking after her, then ? Ha, ha!' Fergus was so tried, he could almost have knocked the stupid fellow down, but, reflecting that it was only Puddin' M'Bean, he only gave his lips a kind of haughty curl, which 174 SHEILA. somehow made Angus redden. It seemed to measure a distance between them. Fergus actually looked at him as if he were beneath contempt. Before he could say anything, Fergus had passed on, and was walking with a long, striding step up the road. He was quite out of sorts. Everything seemed to conspire to vex him. Even Puddin's stupid jeering had left a rankling sting. He walked on until he had passed the swelling moors which hid Dalmore, and he could see its lights gleaming through the darkening night. Thoughts seemed to lie upon him then like a great flood Dalmore at the mercy of aliens and servants ; even Sheila, who might have been its guardian angel, was far away in a London school ; and in that lonely house his uncle was left to die, without a loving hand, or the smile of kith or kin about his bed. That was of far greater moment to Fergus Macleod than the dividing of the estate. It seemed, indeed, more than he could bear. CHAPTER XIX. THE LAST MEETING. Waking the memories that sleep In the heart's silence long and deep. ACDONALD of Dalmore was confined to his bed now for the greater part of the day. If he had a specific disease, the doctors did not name it, but, though he suffered great weakness of body, his mental faculties were unclouded. He knew everything that was going on on his estates, at least, in so far as Angus M'Bean kept him acquainted with it. There were some things, of course, which that wily individual kept to himself. The letter which Fergus Macleod had written to Rob Macnaughton had been duly discussed in the library at Dalmore. Ewan M'Fadyen, who could keep nothing to himself, had taken care to acquaint the factor with its contents, particularly with the bit referring to him. When it was turned over again, with the factor's own suitable embellishments, it had assumed the form of a tirade against the Laird himself. So Macdonald was more angered than usual against his nephew. That same evening he came home, and, after passing by the smiddy, where he saw Fergus, the factor betook himself up the Corrymuckloch road to Dalmore. He was such a constant visitor there, that his comings and goings were scarcely noticed. He generally entered without seeking admittance, and made his own way to ttt 176 SHEILA. the library, or wherever the Laird happened to be. There was nobody to challenge him but Tory, which he usually did with many a bark and snarl, for the animal hated him. Just as the factor was walking across the- hall that evening, Maggie Macintosh, the maid, came up from the kitchen. 4 Well, Maggie,' he said familiarly, ' anything new ? * ' No' much ; but Colquhoun, the writer, was here the day, and he's to be back on Saturday,' she said hurriedly. ' I thocht ye wad like to ken.' * Of course, of course. I'll see you again, Maggie,' said the factor carelessly. ' The Laird's up the night ? ' ' No, sir ; he's in his bed.' 'AH right, I'll just go in; thank you, Maggie,' he said, and turned the handle of the library door. Macdonald was sitting up in his bed, a poor, thin, wasted shadow, with his grey hairs straggling about his brow, and his keen, deep-set eyes peering out with a peculiar brilliancy which struck even Angus M'Bean. The Laird was certainly worse. ' Good evening, Angus ; sit down,' said the Laird, in his usual quiet, rather listless voice. 'Anything fresh? ' ' Not much, sir. Mr. Fergus Macleod returned to Shonnen to-night.' ' Ay, you told me he was coming. Hell be in a terrible way about this exodus from the Fauld.' * Yes ; he's down among them holding a council of Wtir in the smiddy,' said the factor, with a hard laugh. ' I was passing by and overheard some of their sayings. I think he was urging them not to hurry, for things would soon be different.' ' Ay ; what did he mean ? ' asked the Laird. 'He meant, and, indeed, said that when he was Laird things would be different. The ungrateful young rascal, that I should say it of him ; but it roused my anger, Laird, after what you did for him in the past.' ' So the lad, young as he is, is waiting on dead men's shoes already ? ' said the Laird grimly. ' Tell him from me, if ye like, Angus, that a wise heuwife doesna count her chickens before they are hatched.' ' T wouldna like to take it upon myself to tell him that, THE LAST MEETING. 177 Laird. Of course he is the direct heir ; but I hope he'll be an old man before he writes himself Laird of Dalmore,' said the factor smoothly. He was gasping to know the wherefore of David Colquhoun the writer's visit to Dalmore, but had not the face to ask the question directly at the Laird. ' And they are going away when ? upon Wednesday morn'jig, is it, the poor silly bodies?' asked Macdonald. ' Do they think they'll get land and a living for nothi g in another country any more than in Glenquaich ? ' * They certainly expect that, sir ; that's why they are going.' 'Well, well, let them go. They are not going empty-handed from the place, ye were saying ? ' 'Not they. I wish ye saw the kists upon kists of linen and dear knows what packed in the houses. They've strippet the Glen, Laird, an' yet they're countin' themselves ill-used.' 'Well, well, I don't grudge them their gear; they'll maybe need it all,' said the Laird, and his restless eyes wandered about the room as if seeking for something. ' So the lad's come home ? Bid him come up, Angus, when ye see him. I wouldna mind a word with him again, though he does think me a Tartar. He's a lad of spirit, Fergus Macleod. Ye canna deny that, Angus?' 'If ye call it spirit,' said the factor rather sourly, 'he has helped to turn the folk against Dalmore, that's certain, for I've heard him with my own ears.' ' Well, well, he's honest at any rate. Ye had better leave me, Angus. I am tired to-night, and cannot be troubled with any more talk.' ' Have ye been thinking much about business to-day, sir?' the factor asked, as he rose to his feet, loth to go till he could carry something definite with him. 'Not more than usual Good-night. Mind and tell Fergus to come up,' said the Laird, and turned his face to the wall. So there was nothing for Angus M'Bean but to go, which he did, reluctantly enough. He would have given a great deal to learn what was Mr. Colquhoun's errand to Dalrnore. As he "Vent out, Mrs. Cameron, the housekeeper, went into the Laird's room. She was constant and faithful in her attendance upon 12 178 SHEILA. him for the sake of her mistress, whose memory she worshipped still. ' Is that you, Cameron ? ' ' Ay, sir, it's me.' 'What time is it?' ' Twenty minutes from nine, sir.' * It's too late to-night, then. The first thing in the morn- ing, bid Lachlan yoke the pair in the carriage, and go over to Murrayshaugh for Lady Ailsa.' * Lady Ailsa, sir 1 Are ye worse the night ? ' 'Maybe. I want Lady Ailsa to come and bide here, Cameron. She will not refuse me. She was here seven years ago biding when August comes. Te can send what message ye like to Murrayshaugh, but she'll understand.' ' Sir, would y*u like to see Miss Sheila ? ' asked the house- keeper. * Ay, that's what I want. Lady Ailsa will arrange about it. I want no strangers about Dalmore, Cameron, only Lady Ailsa and my bairn. And when Angus M'Bean comes to the door again, see that he doesna get in or I give leave. He comes in here as if the place were his own.' The latter order gave Mrs. Cameron the most lively satis- faction. She did not at all approve of Angus M'Bean. She knew quite well what all these orders portended ; indeed, she could see that the Laird was drawing near his end. She was right glad to think that it was to Lady Ailsa he turned once more in his hour of need, for she was a good woman and a true friend. Angus M'Bean had left the hall door open, and the night wind was blowing coldly in. So Cameron crossed over to shut it before she went down-stairs. She got a fright by seeing a figure on the doorstep, just within the shadow of the porch. ' It's you, Mr. Fergus. Bless me, what a fricht you gave me I Come in, come in.' ' I don't think I can come in. I was coming up by Corry- mickloch, and I thought I would just run up and ask for my uncle, Mrs. Cameron. Tell me just how he is ? ' ' That I wilL Come in, Mr. Fergus, just into the gunroom, if no further,' said the housekeeper, who loved the boy, and had THE LAST MEETING. 179 never forgotten his demeanour that day he came to Dalmore when his uncle's wife died. 4 Did ye meet Mr. M'Bean ? He's just this minute gone.' ' I saw him, but he didn't see me. I came up the footpath, and was at the stable corner when he went down the avenue,' Fergus answered, as he followed the housekeeper into the gun- room, which was now never used. It had been Fergus Macleod's favourite haunt in the old days, when nothing had come between himself and Uncle Graham. ' The Laird's far through, Mr. Fergus,' said the housekeeper sadly. ' He was just giving me orders to send to Murrayshaugh for Lady Ailsa. Miss Sheila will be coming home immediately, likely.' ' Is my uncle dying, Mrs. Cameron ? ' asked Fergus, in a painful whisper, for she had given him an unexpected shock. ' 1 fear it, Mr. Fergus. I cannot think he will last many days.' ' Could oh, do you think he would see me, Mrs. Cameron ? I cannot bear to think I may never see him again.' ' Til ask him. Fm sure he will see you. Eh, laddie, had ye been aye at Dalmore, I believe this would never have happened,' she said, as she went out of the room, and once more returned to the Laird's chamber. ' Are ye sleeping, sir ? ' she asked. 1 No ; what now ? ' asked Macdonald rather peevishly. ' There's somebody come to ask for ye, sir, and would fain see ye,' she said, bending over him. ' Ay ; who's that ? ' ' Mr. Fergus, from Shonnen.* ' Bid him come in, and turn up the lamp,' said the Laird quickly. ' Give me a mouthful of the wine before he comes in. Ay, that'll do.' Fergus had scarcely any hope that his uncle would see him, and was surprised when Mrs. Cameron brought him the friendly message. He entered the sick-room with his cap in his hand, half shyly, half eagerly, as if not knowing exactly how to comport himself. There was a barrier now between him and the uncle i8o SHEILA. who had been the hero and friend of his childish days. He was greatly shocked by his uncle's changed appearance. It was only six months since he had seen him before, but in that time a marked change had been wrought. ' Well, lad, have ye come to see the old man again ? We'll not be here very long now,' said Macdonald, with a grim smile. ' Ye are a big, buirdly chield. Sit ye down, sit ye down.' Fergus took the wasted hand of his uncle between his two strong palms and pressed it, but was unable to speak. Graham Macdonald saw what was in the boy's heart, for it spoke in his earnest eye, and he wondered that he had believed aught ill of him. I Sit ye down, sit ye down,' he said quickly, once more. ' So ye've gotten home ? not a whit the wiser for your college lore, I'll be bound.' 'Ay, Uncle Graham, I've learned something,' answered Fergus, with a gleam of his own bright smile. 'I've learned what like a town's life is, and to be glad that I'm a Highland- man.' ' Well, that's something. Did ye meet our gentleman factor out by as ye came up ? ' asked Graham Macdonald, with a curious, dry smile. I 1 saw him, Uncle Graham, but he didn't see me,' Fergus answered quietly. 'That was maybe as well. He wouldna be sair pleased to see you at Dalmore. Well, lad, he's made a clearance of the Fauld. He says it'll be better for Dalmore, but I'll no' live to see whether he be a true prophet. They have given me a fell amount of bother this while, Fergus. They think I'm a hard laird, but they are waur tenants. They have served me ill, Fergus.' ' Uncle Graham,' in his great earnestness Fergus laid his young, Strong hand on his uncle's arm, ' you don't know the right way. I can't help it if you are angry. Angus M'Bean has not told you the truth about the Fauld folks. They have tried to do well, but he would not let them ; he has just turned them out, Uncle Graham. At least, he made it impossible for them to live with any comfort in the place, and they were obliged to leave before they lost everything.' THE LAST MEETING. 181 ' Ye are a perfect Radical, laddie. Ye'll no' uphold the lairds at all,' said Macdonald, not ill-pleased with his nephew's bold speech. ' I can't uphold what's wrong, Uncle Graham ; and I say the Fauld folks have not been rightly treated. Oh, if you could only get up and go down to see for yourself! I have been down seeing them all to-night, and do you know what message Donald M'Glashan sent up to you ? ' ' No ; what was it ? An honest chap, the smith, but lazy, terribly lazy. Wants to eat for nothing. But what did \\v say?' ' He said I was to tell you they went out not blaming you, for they were quite comfortable when you looked after your own affairs. He said, too,' added the lad, a little hesitatingly, not knowing how his uncle might receive the latter part of Donald's message, ' that a curse would lie on Dalmore till Angus M'Bean was put away.' 'Ay, ay, and he said that?' said the Laird, with a hollow, mirthless laugh. 'There's no love lost betwixt the Fauld folk and Auchloy. Well, well, Donald may be no' far wrang. Well, Fergus, ye see me far through. And are you to be Laird of Dalmore ? ' 'No, Uncle Graham I don't know. I wish you would get well.' 'That'll never be,' said the Laird, in alow voice. 'Fergus Macleod, whatever your lot may be, lay one thing to heart. Marry young, lad, for if ye wait as long as I waited, ye set your mind owre firmly on your wife, and if she be taken as mine was, it's death to you. Fergus, I believe ye never bore me a grudge or an ill-will because I married.' ' Uncle Graham, I loved her,' said the boy simply, but with an earnestness inexpressibly touching. ' Lad, ye can teach your elders a lesson, yet ye havena had a chance. But ye are the son of the minister of Meiklemore, who was too good for this world,' said the Laird musingly. ' Tell me, do you an' your mother agree ? ' * Agree ! of course. 'Well, ye are the first Ellen Macleod has ever 'greed with,' 1 82 SHEILA. said the Laird grimly. 'You and Sheila used to be thick, didn't ye ? The bairn had aye a great speakin' about ye.' Fergus smiled somewhat bashfully, being just at the sensitive age. The Laird smiled too, very faintly, at the rising colour in the lad's face. A new and pleasant thought had struck him, but he did not put it into words. 4 And what's all this college lore to do for you, Fergus ? ' he asked. ' What are ye to do for a living ? ' ' I don't know yet, Uncle Graham. I wanted to go and work when I came from Perth, but mother wanted me to go to college.' * Ay, her notions are high,' said the Laird dryly. ' Never- theless, ye must obey your mother, I suppose. A chap like you will never want, Fergus Macleod. Ye will make a name and a place for yourself wherever ye be.' Fergus Macleod's face flushed with pride and pleasure at his uncle's praise. He still retained his old admiration for the Laird, and his commendation meant a great deal. ' Fll not be afraid to work, at any rate, uncle, I'm so strong.' 4 Ay, ye look it. But what would ye like best to do ? ' 4 Farm land,' responded Fergus promptly. ' I won't work at anything that'll take me to the town.' 4 Ay, ay. Well, well. Ye may get your heart's desire, and ye may no'. Fm tired, Fergus, and maun bid ye good-night. Corae up the morn and see me. You've fairly turned your back on Dalmore.' 4 But no' my face, Uncle Graham ; for it's the first place I look over to when Fm at Shonnen, and the last at night,' said Fergus, laughing, as he rose to his feet. He had not felt so happy for a long time. Confidence seemed to be restored between himself and Uncle Graham. 4 Good-night, then. Bid Mistress Cameron come to me as you go down. Ay, ay, ye are a buirdly chield. In five years there'll not be your marrow in Glenquaich or Strathbraan. An' she's a s\v*et bairn. Good-night. Come again the morn,' said Macdonald somewhat drowsily ; and when Fergus left him he closed his eyes, but muttered half under his breath, 4 Ay, ay, a buirdly chield, and she's a bonnie bairn. It wad make a' richt for Dalmore' THE LAST MEETING. 183 Often Macdonald lapsed into the broad Scotch, especially in moments of strong feeling. When Mrs. Cameron came into the room, she was surprised to see two large tears slowly rolling down the Laird's cheeks. 'Is that you, Cameron?' he said, sitting up with sudden energy. ' Bring me from the library the writing-pad and a broad sheet of paper, with pen and ink, and set the lamp here on this table.' The housekeeper opened the library door and brought the required articles, then propped up the Laird among his pillows to make a comfortable position for writing. She was not without a natural curiosity as to what he was going to do ; he did not often now have a pen in his hand. ' That'll do, Cameron. Is the hand-bell near ? Til ring it when I want ye,' said the Laird, so she was obliged to withdraw. It was quite half an hour before the bell rang, but when she returned there were no signs of any written papers to be seen. He bade her take away the things, and as she did so she observed that a half of the sheet she had provided was gone, and that the ink was still wet on the pen the Laird had used. CHAPTER XX. AN UNWELCOME INTRUDER. I will speak daggers to her. Hamlet. HOSE carriage is that away tip to Dalmore, I wonder? ' said Ellen Macleod half aloud, as she was standing at her bedroom window on the upper flat at Shonnen next morning. 'It's the carriage that went for Lady Ailsa, ma'am,' said Jessie Mackenzie, the maid, who was busy dusting the room. ' Lady Ailsa ! Has she come to Dalmore ? ' ' Yes, ma'am. They told me at the inn this morning, when I was over for the milk, that the Laird was worse, and had. sent for Lady Ailsa.' Ellen Macleod bit her lips. Scarcely before a servant could she keep back the utterance of her angry thought. ' Get on with your dusting there, Jessie, and be sharp about it. Do you know it is twelve o'clock in the day ? ' she said sharply, as she quitted the room and went hastily down-stairs. Fergus was sitting on the doorstep carefully examining his fishing-tackle, for it was a mild, bright morning, and the burns were in splendid order. 'Fergus, did your uncle tell you last night he had sent for Lady Ailsa?' she asked sharply. 'No, mother; he didn't say anything about her,* AN UNWELCOME INTRUDER. 185 ' Well, there she is away up. He is worse this morning, Jessie says, and 7 am not called. But I'll go, Fergus Macleod, in spite of Ailsa Murray. I have a right in Dalmore which she has not.' Fergus dropped his rod and looked up into his mother's face with a strange, sad, perplexed expression. There was a hidden bitterness, a terrible depth of revengeful, angry feeling in the short, sharp words she uttered. But he had no right to speak, nor to say what she should do, so he turned to his work again with a sigh. And Ellen Macleod, in the heat of her anger, put on her bonnet and marched away up to Dalmore. Lady Ailsa was eating a morsel of lunch in the dining-room when the gaunt black figure of Ellen Macleod stalked in before her. Lady Ailsa saw the thunder on her brow, but was absolutely mistress of the occasion. She was a gentle little woman, but not timid in matters of right or wrong, and could be very brave when she had the approval of her own conscience. She had done no wrong to Ellen Macleod or her boy, and had no occasion to fear her. ' Good morning, Ellen,' she said quietly, and without offering to rise or shake hands, for she could not forget the last time they had met. ' It is a long drive from Murrayshaugh. I am quite hungry. Won't you sit down ? ' ' If I please, I suppose I may, in my brother's house, Lady Ailsa,' said Ellen Macleod icily. 'I shall just go up and lay aside my bonnet. As my brother is so ill, I shall just stay.' So saying, she marched out of the room. When the door closed a smile of amusement rippled across Lady Ailsa's face, but it soon passed, and she looked perplexed. ' That is what in Alastair's slang would be called a " go," she said to herself. 'Now, what am I to do? Ellen Macleod as good as told me to quit. But am I to leave poor Macdonald to her tender mercies? She'll frighten him into a fit; and then there's Sheila, poor darling ; she'll be home in two days. No, I must stay, now I am here, whatever the consequences.' But her lunch was spoiled. Her appetite had vanished at sight of Ellen Macleod's sour visage, and she sat with her elbows on the table, wondering greatly what was going on up-stairg. 1 86 SHEILA. Ellen Macleod walked up-stairs, entered one of the guest- chambers, and laid off her bonnet and shawL Her hard face was very resolute. She knew she had a battle to fight, but she was armed for it, and intended to win. She was not going to stand by and see her son's heritage parted among aliens without making an effort to save it. As she came out of the room, Mrs. Cameron met her, and started as if she had seen a ghost. ' Don't look so scared, Cameron,' said Ellen Macleod, with a chilly smile. *I have come to nurse my brother. He has moved from his old rooms, I see. Where is he? ' ' In the little parlour off the library, ma'am,' said Cameron, civilly enough, but her heart sank within her. She had never personally experienced Mrs. Macleod's rule, for there was no housekeeper in Dalmore in her day, but she had heard sufficient about her to make her dread her coming to the house. She watched her go down and enter the library. When the door closed, Cameron rushed down to the drawing-room with a pile of household napery on her arm. 'Oh, Lady Ailsa,' she cried, almost before she was in the room, * do you know who has come ? Mrs. Macleod from Shonnen, and she's away in to the Laird.' 'Hush, Cameron! nevermind. Mrs. Macleod is the Laird's sister,' said Lady Ailsa quietly. * We cannot question her right to see him if she wishes. I wish you would order a fire for me in my own room. It is much colder here than at Murrays- haugh.' 'O yes, my lady, 111 do that; and you'll stay? You won't go away and leave me with Mrs. Macleod ? ' * I must stay until Miss Macdonald conies now, at any rate, Cameron,' said Lady Ailsa, with a slight smile. ' The Laird was asking a little ago if you were ready to see him, my lady. Will you go in ? ' * Not until Mrs. Macleod comes out,' said Lady Ailsa. ' When she sees how spent he is, she surely will not stay long.' Meanwhile, Ellen Macleod had passed through the library and entered her brother's sick-room. It was much darkened ; for he had passed a restless, troubled night, and in the morning bad begged them to shut in the windows, and he would try to AN UNWELCOME INTRUDER. iS 7 sleep. He was awakened from a light doze by the heavy rustling of a woman's dress in the room. ' Is that you, Ailsa ? ' he asked feebly. ' Come in ; never mind the windows ; we can talk quite well in the dark. I have a lot to say to you. I am so glad you have come.' ' Lady Ailsa is in the house, Macdonald ; but I am your sister, Ellen Macleod, come over from Shonnen to see you. I am grieved to see you so changed.' She spoke with unwonted softness, for she was terribly shocked by the ravages the wasted years had made on the once stalwart Laird of Dalmore. But the very sound of her voice roused the dying man into a passion terrible to see. In his long solitude he had brooded over the past, and magnified the unkind treatment his sister had bestowed upon his wife, until it had become a mortal offence which he would not forgive even on the verge of the grave. 'You you dare!' he cried, in a choking voice. 'Get out of my sight! I would not curse you for the boy's sake, though I know not how you ever bore such a son. Leave me, woman, or' The violence of his anger, the purple flush in his face, the wildness of his eye, frightened Ellen Macleod, and she beat a liasty retreat into the adjoining room. Then Macdonald took the hand-bell and shook it with tremendous force, which made Mrs. Cameron drop her napery on the hall floor and run to the room. ' What are you about, Cameron, that you allow whoever ple;ises to enter the house and come to my room ? ' he thundered, with something of his old strength and vigour. ' Lock the doors, and let no one come in until I give permission.' * Sir, I dared not keep Mrs. Macleod out,' said Cameron, trembling, not with nervousness for herself, but with apprehen- sion for her master, who was nearly in a fit. 4 Why not? Where is Lady Ailsa ? Send her here. What is she good for if not to keep the house in order ? Tell her to see that Mrs. Macleod leaves the house.' Pleasant words for a sister to hear ! Ellen Macleod, stand- ing by the library table, clutched her hands, and her white lips 1 88 SHEILA. became like a thread. She was wholly and cruelly injured in her own eyes. She was one of those self-righteous persons who never take home blame to themselves. She regarded Macdonald as the prey of self-seeking, greedy outsiders, who had turned him against his own. Her heart was a tumult of dark thoughts, unrelieved by a single kindly impulse. Her face hardened yet more. She gathered her skirts in her hand, and went out by the way she had come. At the dining-room door Lady Ailsa was standing listening, afraid lest Ellen Macleod's visit had done the Laird some harm. ' For some extraordinary reason, Lady Ailsa, my presence is not agreeable to my brother,' she said, with a dark scowl. 'Perhaps you, who are such a privileged person in Dalmore, can explain it?' 'Yes, I can explain it, Ellen Macleod,' said Lady Ailsa quietly, but with emphasis. ' I pass over the insinuation you make against me, and will only ask you to go back in memory six years ago. Did you do one act of kindness or even of justice to the dear woman your brother married? Do you remember after her death what sympathy you had for her orphan child? You and I met last in this very hall, Ellen Macleod, and Macdonald saw how you greeted the poor child, whose desolate condition might have appealed to your heart. Macdonald has not forgotten these things, nor have I.' 'Nor have I,' said Ellen Macleod, in the heat of passion. 'I know well enough what you are scheming for, Ailsa Murray. But I shall watch you. If I can help it, that woman's child shall never reign in Dalmore.' ' Were it not that she found a father in Graham Macdonald, and that her heart cleaves to him, I should say it was a dark day for her when she crossed the threshold of Dalmore,' said Lady Ailsa sadly. ' I ask no more from Macdonald but that he will give Sheila back to those who love her. The more needful she is of anything we have to share with her, the more welcome she will be to it, and she knows it. If I have one wish in this world, Ellen Macleod, it is that, after Sheila parts from her father, and that parting, I fear, is near at hand, she may have AN UNWELCOME INTRUDER. 189 no more dealings with this house or with any bearing its name.' A sneering smile, which stung Lady Ailsa to the quick, was Ellen Macleod's only reply to that passionate speech. At that moment, Cameron, trembling and anxious, appeared at the library door. ' Oh, my lady, please come in. The Laird will not be quiet till you come. He is much worse,' she said, with an expressive glance at Mrs. Macleod, who instantly entered the dining- room and slammed the door. Lady Ailsa at once went to the Laird's room, and, sitting down by the bed, laid her cool, soft hand on his fevered brow. She was an angel in a sick-room : her every movement, the soft swaying of her garments even, seemed to waft peace to the sufferer blessed by her presence. 'Not a word, Macdonald, not one until you are quiet,' she said, with that sweet authority it was a delight to obey. ' Yes, yes,' she added soothingly, ' she is gone. She will not come here again, and I am going to stay till Sheila comes.' He lay back among his pillows, contented by her presence and by the assurance she so readily gave. In the brief silence which ensued, she too noticed the change wrought since she saw him last a few weeks after Sheila left Dalmore. He was still labouring under the excitement his sister had caused, his breathing was hurried and difficult, and his eyes rolling rest- lessly, while his hands and head were in a burning fever. 'You'll stay and take care of Sheila?' he said at length, in a hurried whisper. 'Yes, yes; Sheila belongs to us. She will be your legacy to me, will she not?' asked Lady Ailsa, with a faint, sad smile. He nodded. ' Her mother would wish it, but she was not afraid to leave her with me. Do you remember when you wanted to take her away to Murrayshaugh, but the bairn would rather bide with me?' said Macdonald, smiling a little too. He was much quieter already, and Lady Ailsa believed it would be better to allow him to talk a little, provided dangerous topics were avoided. i 9 o SHEILA. ' Yes, I remember. Ay, Sheila loves you with a daughter's love. This will be a sore shock to her.' ' You have sent for her ? ' ' Yes, Sir Douglas himself has gone for her. He has some business which made the journey not unprofitable.' ' How soon will she be here ? ' 4 To-morrow, perhaps in the evening, if there is no delay.' ' Ay, ay ; nobody knows what it was to me to let her away ; but I did not want to be selfish.' ' If I could have foreseen this, Macdonald, I would have been the last to have advocated sending her from you. I did it for the best.' * I know that you are a good woman and a true friend, Ailsa Murray. She said so. You'll see that I am laid in the same grave. Promise that.' ' Yes, yes.' Lady Ailsa's tears choked her utterance. There was some- thing indescribably pathetic in the man's intense, undying devo- tion to the memory of his wife. He had indeed loved not wisely but too well ' I know now, looking back, that I have done but sorry duty in the world since she left me,' he said, after a moment. ' If I had it to do again, I would try to bestir myself. But it was so sudden, so awful, it took the heart clean out of me. They will not punish me, will they, by parting us in the other world ?' ' Who are they, Macdonald ? God is very merciful, far more merciful to us, in spite of our shortcomings, than we are to each other,' said Lady Ailsa reverently. 'He forgives unto seventy times seven.' ' He will forgive me, then,' said Macdonald, in a strange, drowsy tone. 'It'll be all right about Sheila, Ailsa. Nobody can touch her.' ' Macdonald, I hope you have not forgotten your own,* said Lady Ailsa quickly, for a dread seized her that the Lord's faculties were wandering. ' Don't let your love for Sheila make you unjust to others. I hope that fine lad, Fergus Macleod, will fill your place as worthily as Laird of Dalmore.' Macdonald muttered a few words she could not aiake out, AN UNWELCOME INTRUDER. 191 and then, turning on his pillow, closed his eyes. He lay so still she feared he had slipped away, but when she laid her hand on his heart, it was still feebly pulsing. From that hour a weight lay upon Lady Ailsa's heart. She hoped, nay, the hope was almost a passionate prayer, that, in Ids anger and sore pain against his sister, Macdonald had not visited the mother's sin upon the head of her noble, generous - hearted son, and cat him off from Dalmore. CHAPTER XXL 1 FAREWELL TO LOCHABER.' There's a track upon the deep, and a path across the sea ; But the weary ne'er return to their ain countrie. GlLFILLAlT. HE day wore on, and Fergus waited at Shonnen for his mother's return. When it grew grey dark, he put on his cap and sauntered away up by Amulree, to see if she was in sight on the road. The inn was very busy, for the folks had gathered in at the gloaming to discuss the affairs of the place. There was plenty to talk about: the departure of the Fauld folks, and the Laird's mortal illness, gave rise to that morbid speculation in which the soul of the village gossip delights. Fergus heard his own name as he passed by the open door, but only smiled a little and passed on. His interest was centred in Dalmore. What could be keeping his mother? What if a reconciliation has been effected between her and his uncle ? The thought made his pulses tingle, for it opened up a new and beautiful vista. He saw his uncle restored to health, himself and his mother at home again in Dalmore, and Sheila with them. Ah, it was only a bright dream, never to be fulfilled. He passed on to the school, and sauntered along in the sweet spring dusk to the Girron Brig, and, after pausing for a few minutes to watch his old friends the trouts playing themselves in the cool, clear 'FAREWELL TO LOCHABER: 193 little currents, he crossed over and began to climb the hill to the house. He seemed impelled to it without any active desire on his own part There were green buds and tender young shoots on all the trees, and the birds, harbingers of summer, were twittering in every bough. The earth was full of promise it was the spring-time of the year. As Fergus turned round the sharp curve of the avenue, he saw a figure walking to and fro before the house, and recognised Lady Ailsa Murray, though he had not seen her for years. When she turned she saw him, and came to meet him with a kind sinile and outstretched hand. She did not like Ellen Macleod, but she was too just a wonun: to allow this to prejudice her against the son. 'How are you, Fergus? I am so glad to see you. It is quite a long time since we met.' ' Yes ; but you are just the same,' said Fergus quickly, and his eye shone, for the kind, sweet, motherly tone went to his heart. ' A little older, I think,' she said gently. ' You are grown almost out of all recognition. I have been anxious to see you for a long time. Alastair speaks so much about you.' ' Yes ; Alastair is my chum.' ' I am glad of it. You will be able to come down to Murrayshaugh, I hope, before the holidays are over. You have come to ask for your uncle, I suppose ? ' * Yes, and to see why my mother stays so long. Is she here, Lady Ailsa?' 'Yes.' A cloud crossed the sunshine on Lady Ailsa's face. ' If you go into the house you will see her. Your uncle is very ill, Fergus.' 'I know he is, Lady Ailsa,' answered the boy, and turned his face away. 'You saw him last night, I think, Mrs. Cameron said?' 'Yes.' 'Fergus,' said Lady Ailsa, and she laid her white, gentle hand on his arm, and bent her soft eyes full on his face, ' I am your true friend, my boy. You believe I wish you well?' ' I know it,' said Fergus, with boyish impulsiveness. From the drawing-room window, Ellen Macleod saw the two i 9 4 SHEILA. together, and wondered what was passing between them. Lady Ailsa's action, and the earnest, beautiful look on Fergus's up- turned face, struck her. She had never called forth such a look on her son's face. 'I am growing very anxious about some things, Fergus,' continued Lady Ailsa. 'You know your uncle cannot live long now ? ' Fergus nodded. ' I doubt there will be trouble about the parting of Dalmore. Do you think you are your uncle's heir ? ' 'I don't know, Lady Ailsa. There is Sheila,' said the lad, and his lip quivered. She was touching a very tender part. 4 Fergus, I pray that Graham Macdonald has not done this wrong ! ' said Lady Ailsa passionately. ' Sheila has no right to Dalmore, and it would make a fearful dispeace. If it is done, there is nothing to remedy it now, unless there should be a miraculous betterment in your uncle's condition. Whatever happens, Fergus, you will know that neither Sheila nor her relatives had any desire after Graham Macdonald's possessions. It is my prayer that she will be restored to us penniless. We love her for herself.' ' But if Uncle Graham wished Sheila to have Dalmore, Lady Ailsa, we can't help it. I would rather Sheila had it than any- body. She is so good and kind to the people in Achnafauld.' ' God bless you, Fergus Macleod I I pray to see you Laird of Dalmore,' said Lady Ailsa, with full eyes, and, bending down, she kissed the boy's broad forehead with a mother's kiss ; and Ellen Macleod saw her do it, and hated her yet more. Not content with all she had done, would she try to win the boy over, and make him a traitor to his race ? When Fergus went into the house, he found his mother in no amiable mood. Her self-chosen position was not enviable nor pleasant. She had forced herself into the house, and kn-ew that it was only because its master believed her to be gone that there was peace in the sick-room. But she had set herself a task, and, with the indomitable will which ruled her, she would perform it to the bitter end. What is it now?' she asked Fergus, when he came into th%. FAREWELL TO LOCHABER? 195 drawing-room. 'I saw you and Lady Ailsa talking quite confidentially. What was she saying to you?' 'Not much, mother. Are you going to stay here all night? ' ' Yes. My place is here until your uncle's end comes. It will not be very long. But you must go back to Shonnen and take care of the house.' ' Have you seen Uncle Graham, mother ? ' ' Yes. His heart is completely poisoned against us, Fergus Macleod. These Hurrays have worked their will with him. I doubt you will be the sufferer; but I will hold my peace until all is over, and the result known. There is no use for you waiting here.' ' No. I am going,' said Fergus, but still lingered, looking about the pretty quaint room, which was filled with sweet memories of Sheila and her mother. 1 A bonnie gimcrackery they've made of this room,' said Ellen Macleod grimly. 'If this is fashionable taste, preserve me from it! Good-night then, Fergus. If I am not down myself in the morning, send Jessie up with some things for me; she will know what to bring.' So Fergus had just to go away back by the road he had come. He had no heart to go along to Achnafauld, for he knew the folks would be sad enough in spirit over the parting from the only homes they had ever known. He went to bed early, leaving strict injunctions with Jessie Mackenzie to awake him at five o'clock. The carts were to leave the Fauld at six o'clock, to convey the folks down to Dunkeld station in time to get the first train. The ship in which they were to cross the ocean was to sail from the Broomielaw late that night, or before sunrise next morning. Never had fairer morning dawned than the second of April ; the sunshine and the joyful chorus of the birds awoke Fergus, and he was up before Jessie was stirring down-stairs. When he pulled up the blind, the morning sun was glittering on the loch and lighting up the bcnnie trees about Achnafuuld, as if to make the place look its fairest for the eyes that were to look upon it for the last time. Theie was no sign of mourning anywhere : the sun was up, the aky brilliantly blue, save where the fleecy shafts relieved it, 196 SHEILA. and there was a soft west wind stirring all the young leaves, and whispering of the summer. It was almost impossible to be sad amid such light and sunshine, and Fergus felt glad for the exiles' sakes, knowing their hearts would be heavy enough without any depressing influences from without. From the high windows of the Lodge he could see right across the river to Achnafauld, and when the carts, five in number, set out in a long string from the clachan, he ran hurriedly down-stairs to awaken Jessie, and to get on his boots. He wanted to be down the road a bit before he had to bid them good-bye, for all the Amulree folks would be out, and he did not want them to hear anything he might say. He walked slowly, often looking back to see the little train gradually approaching Amulree. He could hear the distant strains of the pipes, and guessed that it was blind Rob playing a farewell blast for his friends and comrades, who were going to a land where the sound of the pibroch would never ring in their ears save in memory alone. When out of sight, Fergus sat down on a heap of stones and began whittling a stick with his knife, to keep his fingers in occupation, for he was growing curiously nervous and excited. He had laid this thing to heart, and was convinced in his own mind that a grievous wrong had been done to the Fauld folks. It seemed a long time before the rumble of the carts sounded in the near distance. There were so many hand-shakings, and then a halt had to be made at the inn, where M'Dougall gave them cakes all round for auld acquaintance' sake. But on they came at last, and then Fergus got up to his feet, for his heart was full. In the first cart were Jamie Stewart and his ailing wife, wrapped in so many shawls that she looked like a mummy, but her pale face wore a contented look, as if she were glad to get away from the place. Her bairns were all with her, and by her side her daughter-in-law, young Rob's wife, who had looked forward to being mistress of Little Turrich. In the second cart, the smith's broad face shone red and rosy under his big Tarn o' Shanter; but Mary's eyes were swollen and red, for she had bidden good-bye for ever to a wee grave in the kirkyard at Shian, where her first and last bairn slept. FAREWELL TO LOCHABER? 197 She had a root of heather from that little mound in her kist, and it was her hope and prayer that that root would take kindly to Canadian soil, and so make a bit of home for her in the strange land. Ewan M'Fadyeu's soul had failed him at the last moment, so he was not of the number, but there was a goodly band, five-and-twenty souls in all, big brawny men, sonsy wives, and bonnie healthy-faced bairns, who would make a grand living for themselves under fair conditions anywhere. The gain would be entirely theirs, the loss to the country that was letting so much of its best blood go forth from it. 'There he is, bless him! ' they cried, as Fergus stood still in the road, and took off his bonnet as he gave them greeting. Then Rob the piper ceased his strain, and the carts came to a standstill, and a score of hands were outstretched to bid good-bye to the ' young Laird,' as he was always called in the Fauld. * We kenned ye wad turn up to wush us weel, lad,' cried the smith. * We'll never forget ye, Maister Fergus. Ye hae aye been oor freenV 1 No, don't forget me. Some day, when I'm a man, I'll come out and see you all,' answered Fergus, and there was a sus- picious trembling in his voice, for the women were all crying, and he could see quite well that the men were feeling the trial quite as keenly, if they made less outward sign. ' Cheer up I ' cried Fergus. ' You'll all grow rich and be lairds in your own right out there.' ' Ay, ay ; but if we had our choice, lad, we ken whaur we wad fain be, an* under which laird,' said Rory Maclean, stroking his long yellow beard, and looking with mournful significance at Fergus. ' But we hae muckle to be thankful for, for we are no' gaun to a new country like beggars,' said the smith. ' Eh, lad, John Morrison will never shae your meer when ye get her as I wad. He'll never be a smith ; but he'll hae some fun wi' the smiddy him.' This made a bit laugh among them, and before it had quite died away the carts moved on, and Rob struck up ' Lochaber no more.' Then all eyes were turned back, for in a moment the 198 SHEILA. Keeper's Wood would hide bonnie Glenquaich from their sight for evermore. Then Fergus, with the salt tears blinding his eyes, waved a last good-bye, and turned back towards Shonnen. And so the first pioneers from Glenquaich set out for that far land across the seas which was to be a kinder mother to them than old Scotland had been. As the carts lumbered slowly down Dalreoch Brae to the strains of Rob's mournful piping, a carriage and pair came rapidly up the road. It was closed, but at the sound of the pipes a fair young face peered out in wondering surprise. ' Oh, Uncle Douglas, tell him to stop I ' she cried excitedly. * It is the people of Achnafauld going away to America, I am sure. I must speak to them.' Sir Douglas, a little cross and tired with his hurried journey- ing, gave the order rather ungraciously, and when the carriage stopped Sheila opened the door and ran up the road to meet the carts. At sight of her a cheer broke forth from the travellers, the women ceased their low, mournful crooning of a Gaelic dirge, and their faces brightened at sight of that sweet, earnest young faco, in which love and sorrow for them was so plainly expressed. She had to go round and round shaking hands with every one, though I do not think she spoke many words. Her heart was full to overflowing, and she was just beginning to realize how fraught life is with hard experiences and bitter sorrows. But it was a satisfaction to her and to them to have that last good-bye. Sir Douglas Murray leaned back in the carriage, and did not look out while that scene was being enacted. Alastair's child was a very odd little girl, he had thought more than once since they had begun their hurried journey to Dalmore, but he did not trouble himself about her. 'Well, my dear, have you got your leave-takings over? 1 he said good-humouredly, when she took her seat again beside him. ' Yes, uncle,' was all she said, in a very quiet, self-possessed manner. He wondered why she was not crying over it, but her face was very grave and white, and she folded her hands on her knees, and sat up in a curious, composed way, which made he/ 'FAREWELL TO LOCHABER! 199 uncle look at her again. She was certainly odd. She had the dignity and self-command of a person thrice her years. *0h, Uncle Douglas, tell him to stop again ! ' she cried quite suddenly, just when they were past the inn. ' There is Fergus ; I must stop and speak to Fergus.' ' My dear Sheila, you are a perfect nuisance,' said Sir Douglas. 1 When do you suppose we'll get to Dal more at this rate ? ' But Sheila never heard him. She was leaning half out of the carriage window, with her hat pushed back, and the sweet morning wind tossing her brown hair on her white brow, her eyes shining with real gladness at sight of her old companion and friend. ' Sheila I ' cried Fergus, and with a bound he was at the carriage door, and they clasped hands in silence, though their eyes were eloquently speaking. ' Oh, Fergus, I met the people. Did you see them ? All the little Stewarts, and poor Eppie Maclean, with her lame leg. How awfully lonely and empty the Fauld will be, won't it, now? ' ' Ay, it will,' Fergus said a little gruffly, to hide the emotion he had not mastered yet. ' And poor papa,' said Sheila, the tears welling in her soft, beautiful eyes. ' Oh, Fergus, how sad it is to live in this world, isn't it?' Poor young things! Their early days were being darkly shadowed. The reality and solemn earnestness of human life was being forced upon them before they had tasted much of its gladsome joy. ' Were you going up to Dalmore, Fergus ? Will you come in V There's only Uncle Douglas,' said Sheila, but ' Uncle Douglas ' never looked out. ' No, I was not going up just now. I'll come up by and by, Sheila, and see you.' ' Oh, do, very soon, dear Fergus I Good-bye just now,' said Sheila, and then the carriage rolled on again, and Fergus was left alone in the road. But somehow Sheila had comforted him. She alone understood and shared his feelings for the Fauld folk, and it is a great thing when an earnest soul finds its fellow ; of course it can have but ont issue, but the bairns wure too young 200 SHEILA. yet to know the meaning of the curious yearning each had towards the other. Ah, they would understand it soon enough. Sheila never spoke another word till they drove up to the door of Dalmore, and she sprang with a great sob into Aunt Ailsa's arms. ' My darling, keep quiet ! Don't tremble so, my sweet,' said Aunt Ailsa, in those exquisite, tender tones which were like softest music. ' Come in, come in ; you are so tired, my precious. But Aunt Ailsa is here.' 'Yes, yes, I will be quiet. Can I see papa just now, Aunt Ailsa? I don't think I can wait.' * Only till you eat a morsel of breakfast, dear.' ' Aunt Ailsa, I couldn't take it. It would choke me. I am not hungry or tired or anything. Just let me go to papa. Oh, auntie, such a long, long, long journey I It seems like years since we left London.' ' Yes, dear, you were anxious to be home. I am so thankful you have come. Just in time, Sheila, just in time to say good-bye.' ' I knew it,' said Sheila quietly, as she laid off her hat, and smoothed her bright hair with hurried hands. 'Aunt Ailsa, I ought never to have gone away. I shall never forgive myself. 1 * Hush, hush 1 that was for the best. This way, Sheila. Have you forgotten where papa's rooms are ? ' At that moment Ellen Macleod came sweeping down the front staircase. Sheila only looked at her for a moment with startled eyes, and then passed through the library door. She no longer feared the strong, black-browed woman whom Fergus called * mother,' but the memory of that cruel blow was burned into her heart. 'Just go in, Sheila. I shall wait here. I think the doctor is in,' whispered Lady Ailsa. Sheila nodded, and walked with steady step into the chamber of the dying Laird. The doctor and the housekeeper were standing by the bed. Macdonald, after a paroxysm of breathlessness, was lying white and still as death. Sheila stepped forward and silently knelt 1 FAREWELL TO LOCHABER? 201 down by the bed. She made no noise, but the sense of her beloved presence was with Macdonald, and he opened his eyes. The other two silently withdrew. Then Sheila bent over and laid her quivering lips to his brow. ' Papa ! oh, dear papa 1 ' ' My Sheila ! My ain bairn ! It is well,' said the Laird, in tones of deep content. He laid his feeble hand on her bonnie head, and his lips moved. He was blessing her. She felt it, though she could not hear any words. There was a deep silence in the room, and then a slight struggle (harbinger of the end) shook Macdonald's wasted frame once more. * Go away, Sheila ; good-bye,' he said, with extreme difficulty. 1 Fergus be good to him ; will in ' He stopped and pointed vaguely round him. It was a last effort. Sheila shivered and fell upon her knees, covering her face with her hands. The others came hurriedly in. Aunt Ailsa put her arm round the kneeling girl and laid her gentle hand on her head. Sir Douglas stood by with folded arms, and in a few minutos the last struggle was over, and Macdonald had closed his eyes for ever on Dalmore* CHAPTER XXIL SHEILAS INHERITANCE. The best laid schemes o* mice an' men Gang aft agley. BURNS. N the library of Dalmore, on the afternoon of the fifth of April, there was gathered a party of nine persons. They were Sir Douglas and Lady Murray, with their son Alastair, and Sheila, Ellen Macleod and Fergus, Mr. Macfarlane, the minister of Amulree, Angus M'Bean, the factor, and David Colquhoun, the writer from Perth. All were in deep mourning ; the gentlemen had just returned from the churchyard at Shian, where they had laid the Laird of Dalmore to his rest. Dinner was also over. Mr. Colquhoun had suggested that dinner should be served before the will was read, knowing very well that after the scene which would take place in the library these nine persons would never again break bread under the same roof-tree. For the first time for many years, Ellen Macleod once more presided at the table in the house of Dalmore. She was very gracious, even to the Murrays ; she believed that their day was completely over. She did not wish it more fervently than they ; their hope was that Fergus Macleod would prove to be his uncle's sole heir. They loved Sheila as their own child, and wished for nothing more than to take her away from Dalmore with them, as such, that very night. Lady AUsa hoped and even prayed SOJ SHEILA'S INHERITANCE. 203 for it, but did not expect it. A great fear lay upon her. She ate nothing at the table, and could scarcely take part in the quiet desultory talk which beguiled the hour. She was almost sick with apprehension, when they rose at length and filed into the library. There was no lingering at the table, the meal being purely formal. The moment dessert was over, Ellen Macleod rose and led the way from the room. She looked majestic in her stiff, trailing robe of black silk, with its heavy trimmings of crape. She moved with a consciousness of power and place, which gave Lady Ailsa a kind of fearsome amusement. Sheila looked exquisitely lovely in her plain black frock, kept close by her aunt, and sat beside her on the settee which stood in the square window of the library. Ellen Macleod seated herself near the table ; the gentlemen all stood. There was an air of expectancy about them all, and Angus M'Bean was visibly excited. The two young persons most deeply and immediately interested were the most unconscious present. ' We are all ready, Mr. Colquhoun,' said Ellen Macleod, when the laywer seemed to hesitate a little as he opened out the bundle of documents he held in his hand. 'Yes, madam; I shall not detain you long,' replied the lawyer courteously. ' The will itself is very brief and simple ; whether it will be satisfactory or not to all present I cannot say.' He cleared his throat a little, and straightened his high collar as if it impeded his utterance. Lady Ailsa clasped her hands almost convulsively over Sheila's, and leaned forward, her face pale with her intense excitement. Ellen Macleod had her hands placidly folded on the table ; her face wore an expression of expectant complacency. Fergus was standing in the little corner window with his back to the company. He could see right up Glenquaich to the trees at Shian, and the sunlight was striking on the little burying-ground. He even fancied he could see the mound of the new-made grave. The lawyer's voice recalled his wandering thoughts. ' I, Graham James Macdonald of Dalmore and Findowie, declare this to be my last will and testament, for which all other 204 SHEILA. documents whatsoever must be set aside. I leave to Jane Cameron, my housekeeper, the sum of two hundred pounds, for her faithful attendance upon me. To John Macfarlane, tlie minister of Amulree, two hundred pounds, on condition that he acts as trustee on my estate ; to my nephew, Fergus Macleod, presently residing at Shonnen Lodge, a thousand pounds, tc stock the farm of which he spoke to me ; and lastly, to my well- beloved daughter, Sheila Murray Macdonald, the lands and estates of Dalniore and Findowie, together with all furnishings and plate and plenishing, and the entire residue of my estates, both personal and monetary, absolutely for her own use and benefit. I only ask that she shall retain Angus M'Bean of Auchloy as her steward until she shall reach the age of twenty-one, when she can act upon her own discretion.' There was a moment's absolute silence when the lawyer ceased speaking. He was the first to break it by rising and approaching Sheila with outstretched hand. 'I congratulate you, Miss Murray Macdonald, upon your inheritance,' he said. Then Ellen Macleod rose slowly and majestically from her seat and faced those in the front window. Involuntarily Sir Douglas moved towards his wife. Fergus turned from his post and looked at his mother's face. It was absolutely colourless, but her eyes were like burning coal. Both hands, held straightly by her sides, were clenched until the nails were driven into the palms. 'David Colquhoun,' she said, and her very voice seemed changed, 'I give notice that in my son's name I contest this will' ' Madam, if I may be permitted to advise, I say no,' said the lawyer quietly. 'The wUl is perfectly valid, and not unjust.' 'Not unjust!' screamed Ellen Macleod, her anger bursting forth like a fierce flame. * Not unjust, David Colquhoun, for a man to pass by and slight his own for those who have no claim upon him ! Not unjust ! There is no court in Scotland which, knowing the circumstances, would hesitate to set it aside on account of undue influence. My brother's long illness weakened his intellect, and these people have turned it to their own advantage.' SHEILAS INHERITANCE. 205 1 Have a care, Mrs. Macleod ; your charges are actionable,' said Sir Douglas Murray, with haughty stiffness. ' Be pleased to remember of whom you are speaking, and be more careful.' ' I know very well of whom I am speaking, Sir Douglas Murray, but I do not so particularly blame you/ said Ellen Macleod, sweeping him a little haughty curtsey, which made his proud cheek redden. ' Ailsa Murray, will you answer me a question ? Do you consider the will which has just been read as perfectly fair and just?' Lady Ailsa rose, and Sheila, slipping her hand from her aunt's, went across the room to Fergus. For a moment her action was scarcely noticed. Ellen Macleod engrossed all attention. ' Ellen Macleod, it has been my unceasing hope and prayer that Macdonald would not make Sheila his heiress,' said Lady Ailsa sadly. ' I have never ceased to urge upon him his nephew's claim. It is to me a greater grief even than his death.' ' These are fine words, Ailsa Murray, but they are only word?,' said Ellen Macleod, with a bitter sneer, ' But let that white-faced child not be too proud of her inheritance. There is a curse the curse of the wronged and the robbed upon Dalmore and upon her.' ' Look at these two, Ellen Macleod, and if you have a woman's heart pray to God to forgive your cruelty,' said Lady Ailsa, with brimming eyes, and pointing to the window recess where Sheila and Fergus stood side by side, Sheila with her slim girlish hand laid upon the arm of Fergus, and her sweet eyes uplifted to his face. The abrupt silence arrested Sheila. She looked round, and then crossed the room again with a steady step. There was a dignity and grace about her which impressed all present. She stepped into the little circle, and directly faced t,he lawyer and the angry mistress of Shonnen. There was a l>reathless silence, which her sweet young voice immediately broke. ' Mr. Colquhoun,' she said clearly and distinctly, ' am I the mistress of Dalmore ? ' 206 SHEILA. The lawyer bowed his head. He had witnessed many curious scenes, but never one like this." < Can I do what I like with it ? ' ' It is bequeathed to you absolutely for your own use and benefit, Miss Murray Macdonald,' he answered, quoting the terms of the will. Sheila turned aside. As she passed by Ellen Macleod she drew in her dress, lest it should touch the stiff, aggressive skirts of that relentless woman. 'Fergus, you hear!' she said, touching Fergus on the arm again. 'Dalmore is mine. I give it to you, so it does not belong to me any more. I know you love it, dear Fergus, and I give it to you.' There was something indescribably pathetic in the look which passed between these two young things, just standing on the threshold of manhood and womanhood, and too early thrust upon its cares. Fergus never spoke; but those who were present long remembered the expression upon his face. * You're a brick, Sheila 1 ' cried the boyish, matter-of-fact voice of Alastair Murray. It broke the strain. Sheila smiled wanly, and with tottering steps came back to Lady Ailsa and fell upon her breast. 4 Take me away, Aunt Ailsa, take me away 1 ' she sobbed, her whole form shaking. ' I am afraid of her. Take me away.' Lady Ailsa wound her arm about the girl's quivering form and led her out of the room. When the door closed there was an awkward and uncomfortable pause. Ellen Macleod was rebuked in her inmost heart, but it suited her to assume a haughty scorn of the whole proceedings. * Gentlemen, I fancy we need not prolong this interview ? ' said the lawyer, looking inquiringly round. ' I should imagine not. It has not been particularly pleasant thanks to you, madam,' said Sir Douglas, looking fixedly at Ellen Macleod. She merely shrugged her shoulders in reply. * Mr. Colquhoun, I repeat that I intend to contest this will, she said pointedly to the lawyer. * Madam, no respectable practitioner would assist you, much SHEILA'S INHERITANCE. 207 less any court of justice entertain your claim,' retorted the lawyer, for she wearied and disgusted him. ' Besides, your son, I fancy, would not support the claim you would raise on his behalf/ ' My son has a craven spirit. He should have flung back the insulting offer in the teeth of the child who made it,' said Ellen Macleod, her anger rising again. ' Receive a gift of his own, indeed, and to stand by tamely and hear it I I am ashamed of my son, Mr. Colquhoun.' ' Unless I am mistaken, he is ashamed of you,' said the lawyer shortly. He was grieved and sorry for the boy, who had been obliged to witness this unseemly scene and keep silent. There was a look of intense misery on his face, noted by all present. He turned about when the lawyer spoke, and went out of the room. Alastair slipped after him, and outside the door caught him and put his arm through his. 'Never mind, old boy, don't take on,' he said eagerly and affectionately. ' Everybody understands you, and ' He paused suddenly, for it would hardly do to say anything to Fergus about his own mother. * And what a mother I ' as Alastair remarked privately to his brothers that night. ' I tell you it's rough on a fellow having such an out-and-out Tartar of a mother.' 4 Alastair, 1 said Fergus wearily, ' let me alone. I I can't speak to you just now.' 'I see you're dreadfully cut up, but don't mind. Everybody knows you're a brick, 1 said Alastair quickly. ' But, I say, isn't Sheila a stunner, and didn't she give it hot to * Another abrupt pause. ' I'd better get out, or I'll put my foot in it,' muttered Alastair to himself. Fergus had not noticed it, however. But what he thought of Sheila nobody would ever know until the day came when he told Sheila herself. But that chance did not come for a long time. ' Well, I'll leave you, for I see I'm a bore. Mind you promised to come over to Murrayshaugh, and don't be cut up. It'll all come right everything always does.' With which cheerful philosophy good-natured Alastair shook his friend 208 SHEILA. warmly by the hand and departed. Fergus walked on a few steps, and then, finding he was beginning to descend the hill, he paused for a moment as if undecided what to do. He looked across to Shonnen, There was no comfort there. His mother would follow soon ; and, God help the lad 1 at that moment he shrank from his mother with his whole soul. He turned round, and cut his way through the thicket to the heathery steep behind the house. Up, up. At the very crest of Crom Creagh he would be safe. He must be alone for a little, for there was a tumult raging in his soul. He took notice as he went of the fresh green shoots on the heather, and that here and there a daisy and a buttercup were in flower. The sweet spring day was passing fair and full of divinest promise, but his mind was dull and forlorn. He felt very des late upon the face of the earth. His strong young limbs soon climbed the steep ascent, and among the boulders and rough bracken on the very summit of the hill he sat him down. A ewe and her twin larnbs, grown strong and sturdy with the genial sun, eyed him in mild surprise, but did not appear timid in his presence. He sat down on a stone, and, taking off his cap, allowed the grand healthful wind to blow about him. Even in the ab- solute calm of a summer's day it was always breezy up Crom Creagh. Away up bonnie Glenquaich the sun shone radiantly, the loch glowed and flashed like burnished silver, and the winding river made a silver thread, too, among the green meadow-lands on either side. He was looking straight down on Achnafauld, and mechanically counted sixteen ' reeking lums ' where there had been formerly four-and-twenty. There were seven empty houses in the clachan, and the beginning of Rob's prophecy was fulfilled. Glenquaich 1 which he loved and had hoped to call his own. That brief, bright dream was over, and it belonged to Sheila now. Memories crowded upon the lad, for when hope seems quenched memory sometimes has a healing touch. They were tender memories of Uncle Graham and of his sweet wife, who were sleeping now side by side in Shian, reunited by death. Through the blinding tears which had broken down the SHEILA'S INHERITANCE. 209 miserable stony calm that had bound him in the house, he presently caught sight of a horse and rider crossing the Girron Brig. It was Angus M'Bean, the factor, away home to Auchloy. ' Ay, ay,' he was muttering to himself. ' One-and-twenty ! It's a puir fushionless fowl that canna feather its nest in five years.' CHAPTER PLANS. pusillanimous heart, be comforted, And, like a cheerful traveller, take the road, Singing beside the hedge. E. B. BROWNING. ADY AILSA took Sheila up to the drawing-room, and locked the door from within. Sitting down on a couch, she drew the poor sobbing child to her side, and let her cry until calmness came of its own accord. * There now, Sheila, you are better now,' she said brightly. ' A pretty way, young lady, to receive the announcement that you are a great heiress.' ' Aunt Ailsa, never, never say that again,' said Sheila quickly. ' I am not a great heiress. Did you not hear me giving it all up to poor Fergus ? ' 'Yes, I heard and loved you for it, my darling. There was hardly a dry eye in the room. Fergus himself will never forget it, or I am mistaken in him. But, Sheila, listen to me.' * Yes, Aunt Ailsa.' * You can no more set aside your father's will than than any one else,' said Lady Ailsa, not caring to mention Ellen Macleod's name. 'You must be Lady of Dalmore and no PLANS. 211 Findowie, whether you will or no. Cheer up, my darling, it is not a thing to break your heart about, I am sure.' ' But Fergus, Aunt Ailsa ? ' 'My dear, Fergus will be the very last to grudge you your good'fortune. I saw it in his eye. He is not his mother's son in that, Sheila. And then, who knows, you may make it up to him some day.' 'If I can, I will, Aunt Ailsa,' said the girl, grown much more composed, but still looking as if the thing weighed upon her heart. 'Just at the last papa spoke of Fergus, and I thought he said something about a will. Perhaps he regretted he had not made it different. Aunt Ailsa, it is not fair that I should have Dalmore, you know ; though he called me his daughter, I was not really that.' 'You gave him a daughter's duty and love, Sheila. My child, I assure you there is nothing to make yourself miserable about,' said Lady Ailsa. 'You are old enough to understand things now, and when I tell you that Fergus has been pun- ished for his mother's sake, you will know quite well it is true. She was very unkind to your poor papa once when she had no cause.' ' Poor Fergus ! ' repeated Sheila, her heart aching for her old friend and playmate. It seemed to her a far greater sorrow to him to have such a mother than to have lost Dalmore. 'Aunt Ailsa, wasn't it curious that papa mentioned in his will that Mr. M'Bean must stay on ? ' said Sheila musingly. ' Yes, that is a pity ; but we can see about that after- wards.' ' If I had known this morning, when I met the people from the Fauld at Ballinreich, I should have asked them to go back,' said Sheila, a new thought striking her. ' Ay, very soon you will begin to exercise your privileges, Sheila,' said Lady Ailsa, with a smile. ' We women are very fond of the sweets of power. But I must go and see what your uncle is about ; he will be chafing to get away. I suppose we must leave you behind ? ' * In this house alone, Aunt Ailsa. I should die? 212 SHEILA. 1 Then will you go down to Murrayshangh to-night ? ' ' If you will take me.' ' Of course I will. I saw Alastair's face fall in the library once or twice. I fancied he thought this momentous day would make a serious change in his cousin. These boys adore you, Sheila, stupid fellows 1 but they never had a sister. Shall we go down now, then ? ' ' Do you think she will be away ? ' asked Sheila fearfully, now beginning to tremble again. Ellen Macleod had filled the child's heart with terror six years before, and had renewed it that day. 'Yes, yes. She will never stay; she knows the worst. I fancy Ellen Macleod will never be in Dalmore again unless some unlooked-for transformation takes place,' said Lady Ailsa hastily. ' You must be a brave little woman now, Sheila ; remember, you have a position to uphold.' Sheila sighed and shook her head. Her aunt thought how frail and slender she looked in her mourning, and how pale and even careworn her sweet face. She was very young to have such a responsibility laid upon her shoulders. Looking forward, Lady Ailsa could foresee nothing but greater care, and again wished passionately that Graham Macdonald had given back Sheila penniless as he had received her from the Murrays. She unlocked the drawing-room door, and they went down- stairs together again. The sound of voices guided them to the library; but, before letting Sheila enter, Lady Ailsa took the precaution to look in and make sure that Ellen Macleod had gone. In the far window, Sir Douglas, Mr. Macf'arlane, and Mr. Colquhoun were talking together over the will. Alastair, after parting with Fergus, had sauntered round to the stables. Ellen Macleod had already crossed the Girron Brig on her way back to Shonnen Lodge, to which she A\as condemned for the rest of her life. We will not seek to follow her there, nor to analyze her thoughts. They were as dark as the depths of the loch made drumlie by a spate in winter. But she was to be pitied too. ' Well, young lady ? ' said Sir Douglas, turning kindly to Sheila when they entered the room. ' I shouldn't have dared PLANS. 213 to call you a perfect nuisance the other morning had I known what was in prospect for you.' ' Don't, Uncle Douglas,' said Sheila, trying bravely to smile, but making rather a failure of it. ' Where is Alastair ? ' 'Oh, among the horses, likely. He went out nfter Fergus.' Sheila's face brightened. She was very fond of Alastair, though he teased her unmercifully, and she knew he would cheer up poor Fergus. Had she only seen poor Fergus then, toiling up the rocky brow of Crom Creagh, with a dark cloud on his face, her heart would have sunk within her. She did hear about that lonely vigil, but that was long after, when memory scarcely had a sting. In the meantime she was spared the full knowledge of her old friend's suffering. ' When are we to go home, then ? ' asked Sir Douglas, turning to his wife. 'I have offered Mr. Colquhoun a drive, but unless we can start within an hour it will be of no use to him.' 'I daresay we can be ready, Sheila and I,' returned Lady Ailsa. 'She will go down with us to-night; we can easily come up when there is any need.' Sir Douglas nodded, and the ladies again left the room. While Sheila went up to prepare, Lady Ailsa rang the house- keeper's bell, and waited for her in the hall. ' Come in here, Mrs. Cameron,' she said, when the house- keeper appeared, and, opening the dining-room door, motioned her to enter. ' The Laird's will has just been read, Mrs. Cameron,' said Lady Ailsa at once. ' I think it right to acquaint you with the contents. Miss Sheila has been left Lady of Dalmore.' ' God bless the poor dear bairn,' said Cameron, through her tears. ' She is greatly upset. I am afraid the thought is more a grief than a joy to her at present. We will take her away with us to-night. Don't you think that will be best ? ' ' Yes, my lady ; it would be terribly lonesome for her here,' said Cameron. ' Pardon the question, Lady Ailsa, but is there anything for Mr. Fergus Macleod ? ' ' A thousand pounds. Tt is an unspeakable regret to us all 214 SHEILA. that he is not now Laird of Dalmore,' said Lady Ailsa, speaking out quite frankly to the faithful servant. ' I did what I could to persuade the Laird. I fear, Cameron, that the innocent often suffer for the guilty in this world.' ' What did she say ? Did she hear it read, my lady ? ' asked Cameron, with an eagerness she could not repress. ' Yes ; but what she said is not worth repetition, Cameron,' returned Lady Ailsa quietly. ' I am truly sorry for her boy.' ' And I, my lady, for oh, he has a true heart ! ' said the housekeeper, with tears in her eyes, and thereupon recounted to Lady Ailsa what had happened on the day of Mrs. Mac- donald's death, six years before. ' This will be a sore blow to him, my lady, for he worships the very stones that lie about Dalmore. But it is a great joy to us to have such a sweet young lady as Miss Sheila over us.' ' She will be a gentle mistress, Cameron, and she will win the service of love,' said Lady Ailsa, with a smile. ' I need not ask you to look faithfully to the house for her sake. She has not much interest in it just yet, but it will soon awaken. Let everything go on quietly as before, and you will hear from me from time to time. I do not expect that Sheila will stay very long at Murrayshaugh.' ' Will she not go back to school, my lady ? ' ' I think not. She is really very highly accomplished for her years. We cannot lay any plans in the meantime, however, but we will let you know of any arrangements in good time.' 'My lady, do you think Mrs. Macleod will come over?' asked the housekeeper hesitatingly. ' I do not think so, but if she does you must be very firm. She has no right in the house now. She has forfeited it by her own actions. Say you have your orders to admit no one without permission from your mistress, Miss Murray Mac- donald.' ' Very well, my lady,' said Cameron, with evident relief. ' Oh, Cameron, am I not forgetting a very important part oi to-day's proceedings ! Mr. Macdonald has left you two hundred PLANS. 215 pounds for your faithful service, and I am sure you deserve it. I congratulate you with all my heart.' ' No, no ; I only did my duty for my dear lady's sake, and he was a good master too,' said Cameron hastily. ' I have never had so good a place, nor people I loved so well. I hope to live and die in Dalmore.' ' If you do, I hope you will see some happy changes to atone for the sorrows you have seen in Dalmore,' said Lady Ailsa, and shook hands with the faithful servant as she turned to go. From that time, if not before, Jane Cameron would have laid down her life for Dalmore and its sweet mistress. She felt that an absolute trust was reposed in her, and that calls out whatever is noble in the nature of gentle or simple. Within the hour the carriage rolled away from Dalmore. Fergus saw it cross the Girron Brig, but, as it was half closed, he did not know Sheila was within. Just after sundown he rose and took his way down, not straight to the house, but by a slanting sheep-track which brought him out at Corrymuckloch Inn. Then he went over the hill-road to Achnafauld. Any- where, anywhere, rather than back to Shonnen. God help the lad! he had a home which was no home; and his heart was hungry within him for the love which blessed the lives of others. When Alastair Murray had talked of his mother, with a kind of disrespectful tenderness which was true honour, as ' the dear old mater,' Fergus had listened with a kind of vague, yearning envy. His mother was a shadow on his life ; and yet he loved her too, though not as he would and could have, if she had allowed him. The grey night-shadows were falling about Shian and the head of the loch when he reached the brow of the hill and saw the Gleu before him once more. The sky was soft and tender, dappled with rose-fringed clouds, with here and there a bright star peeping out like gleams of heavenly promise. The air was full of peace, and laden with vague, subtle odours suggestive of bursting bud and blade in some wood. In the distance a cuckoo was calling sweetly to his mate, and the mountain burns were dancing merrily in their rocky beds ; making that pleasant, gurgling murmur which is some- 216 SHEILA. times the only sound to break the solemn solitudes of the hills. It was a fair world. The lad's heart filled again at sight of the familiar strath, and at thought of the quiet grave at Shian, and of the exiles on the bosom of the broad Atlantic. In his loneli- ness and heart-break something prompted him to go to Rob Macnaughton, who always understood him, and would sympa- thize with him, he knew. Before he turned into the main road he took a long survey right along to Auchloy, lest any of the M'Beans should be coming on horseback or afoot. He could not have borne to meet them then. But there was not a living thing to be seen but two or three cows wandering about the roadside seeking a bite of young grass. He quickened his pace, and in a few minutes crossed the burn, regardless of wetting his feet, and lifted the sneck of Rob's door. The loom was busy, he heard the click, click, of the needles as he entered ; but Rob heard him, and, coming off his stool, joined him in the kitchen. 'Weel, lad?' 4 Put the bolt in the door, Rob, quick,' said Fergus. Rob did so, taking his time over it, and then carried the lamp from the shop into the kitchen. After he had set it upon the table, he turned his keen eye full on the lad's face. He had thrown himself on a creepie by the hearthstone, and was 1 glowerin' ' at the smouldering peats, as if he had interest in nothing else. 4 Ye're a stranger, Maister Fergus,' said Rob slowly, and, reaching to the peat fire, he laid on some more fuel, though the night was close and warm. ' Maybe, though,' he added slowly, ' it's the Laird I'm speakin' till ? ' 4 No, Rob, it's not the Laird,' said Fergus, with a strange, slow, flickering smile. 'Aweel, if it's no' the Laird, he hasna the Laird's cares to haud him doon, and they're no* sma' in they times.' said Rob cheerily, as he gave the peats a bit stir with his foot. He was keenly watching the face of Fergus all the while. He saw that the lad was sore vexed about something, and that in a minute it would all come out. He had a quick, warm, sympathetic heart, this rough, morose stocking-weaver, because he had the PLANS. 117 poet's soul. He was never rough, never morose, never any- thing but genial and happy-hearted with these two young creatures, Fergus and Sheila, because he loved them, and they loved him. He went away back to the shop after a moment, pretending to look for his spectacles, and as he crossed the little passage between the two places he heard a sob break from the boy's lips. It was the first wave of the tempest. The pent spirit and aching heart found relief that night, ay, and comfort too, before Fergus Macleod left Bob Macnaughton's fireside. CHAPTER XXIV. THE AWAKENING. Twixt summer and her soul there seems to run A power to feel together. J. B. SELKIRK. HEILA, Miss Gordon has come home to the manse. She is not strong, her father tells me, and has been obliged to give up her situation in Doncaster. I am going in to Logie-Murray this afternoon to see her.* ' May I go with you, Aunt Ailsa ? ' I was just going to ask you, my dear. You are moping too much. You will enjoy the drive.' * Oh, Aunt Ailsa, I don't mope. I am very happy here,' said Sheila quickly, but Aunt Ailsa only shook her head. She was concerned about Sheila. It was more than two months since Macdonald's death, and Sheila had been at Murrayshaugh all the time. She had never expressed any desire to return to Dai- more, even for a day, nor had she ever voluntarily spoken of the place or of her special interest in it. Murrayshaugh was very quiet during the summer months Alastair in Edinburgh, and the other lads at Trinity College in Glenalmond. But for Sheila Murrayshaugh had been a childless house, only she was more of a woman now than a child. She had given up childish pursuits, and even when the lads would come over from Glen- THE A WAKENING. 2 1 9 almond sometimes to spend Saturday, she did not care to share their romps as of yore. She had grown very quiet and womanly in her ways, and would sew and knit for her aunt's poor folk in Logie-Murray, or pore over her lesson-books, laboriously keeping up her German and French by reading the literature of those countries. Or she would go out for hours by herself with her sketching materials, and in the evenings practise her music, which, however, was not a task, but a labour of perfect love. Sheila was a born musician. Alto- gether, in her sixteenth year, Sheila was a model young lady, but Aunt Ail^a would rather have had the Sheila of old, who tore her frocks climbing trees and fences, and wet her feet 'gumping' with her cousins in the burns. The boys had lost their chum, and Murrayshaugh its merry - hearted maiden. Lady Ailsa saw that the inheritance was weighing on the child's shoulders, and she did not know what to do with her, or how to act. Sometimes she remonstrated with her for sitting so closely over her books, then Sheila would say, with a little half sad, wholly pathetic smile, ' Aunt Ailsa, I have such a lot to learn.' And once, when Lady Ailsa had come upon her in the library poring over one of Sir Douglas's huge volumes on estate management, she had gone to her own room to have a good cry. She felt almost angry with the dead for leaving such an incubus on the young shoulders of the living. Murrayshaugh was a sweet spot, a low, large, commodious house, nestling among trees on the low ground beside the Logie, which watered the beautiful policies. In the early months of summer, when the trees wore their freshest garb, its sylvan loveliness could not be surpassed. But Sheila felt shut in sometimes, and fancied it was difficult to breathe in the close sheltered air among the woods and waters. She loved the heights, the bare, grand solitudes, where nothing but the heather grew. Dalmore was her ideal, and yet she did not seek to return to it, her own home, an inheritance which nobody could take away from her. The time had not come yet, but it was at hand. These quiet days at Murrayshaugh seemed a kind of preparation for a coming change. I think 220 SHEILA. Lady Ailsa, who loved the bairn with a mother's love, felt by and by that thought was maturing towards action, and so left her in peace. After luncheon that afternoon, Sheila and her aunt set out in Lady Ailsa's pony carriage to drive through the leafy roads to the village. Sheila took the reins, and as Lady Ailsa leaned back among her comfortable cushions and looked at the straight, lithe young figure, and the clear-cut, sweet face, she gave an involuntary sigh. ' She'll make some of the lads' hearts ache yet ; and what about her own ? She takes everything so terribly in earnest.' ' Sheila, my dear, do you know you are quite a woman,' she said presently, giving expression to a part of her thought. * I feel very old, Aunt Ailsa,' said Sheila quite soberly, and Lady Ailsa laughed. 'My child, I am forty-eight, and I am certain I never had such a sober, careworn face. I could shake you, Sheila, positively shake you.' 1 Do it then, auntie,' said Sheila, laughing too. ' How well Punch and Judy go together, don't they ? ' 4 Yes ; they are very old too, but they take life easily, like their mistress. What a pleasant afternoon this is ! ' ' Delightful ! We shall be out of the trees presently, and see about us, Aunt Ailsa. I don't like trees very much. They make the landscape pretty, but they seem to absorb the fresh- ness of the air.' ' You talk like a book, child. I think Murrayshaugh the loveliest place in the world. How sweet Logic is looking this afternoon. Look at the sun striking the spire on the kirk. Confess now, Sheila, it is a pretty picture.' ' Very, Aunt Ailsa. I think I must come to the toll here and sketch the kirk,' said Sheila; but she was thinking of another kirk, bare, unlovely, uncomfortable within and with- out, but which was hallowed to her by many sweet memories which time would never dim. Punch and Judy, accustomed to follow the dictates of their own sweet wills, relaxed their steady trot presently, and began to ascend very leisurely the gentle slope of the road. THE A WAKENING. 2 2 \ 4 When did Miss Gordon come home, auntie?' asked Sheila, still keeping her eyes fixed on the old kirk, which was bathed in the warm yellow sunlight. 1 On Saturday.' 1 Is she very ill ? ' 4 No, only fagged out Teaching in a school is very hard work, Sheila.' 4 1 think it must be.'* 4 1 am very sorry for the minister. It is a very difficult problem how to rear and educate ten children on a very limited income. Harriet's help will be sadly missed.' Sheila was silent. Her aunt wondered what sudden thought had brought that luminous light to her eyes. There was very little said after that. Having reached the crest of the little hill, Punch and Judy, with one accord, trotted gallantly down the brae into the village, up the long, wide, pictun sque street, and drew up, with great satisfaction to themselves, at the white gates of the manse. Sheila jumped out, opened the gate, and led the ponies up the short, shady avenue to the front door. There was a basket chair on the lawn, from which a rather pale, delicate-looking girl rose and came forward to meet them. Her face flushed with pleasure at sight of her old pupil, and Sheila's eyes filled as she kissed her. There was such a change. 4 1 am so sorry you are ill, dear Miss Gordon,' she said affectionately. 4 Not very ill, only tired out, Sheila,' returned Harriet Gordon. 4 How are you, Lady Ailsa ? Will you come up to the drawing-room. Mamma is lying down in the study, I think. The heat tries her.' 4 Don't disturb her, then, on any account. It is you we have come to see, Harriet,' said Lady Ailsa kindly. 4 Well, perhaps we had better go in ; it is so sunny here.' 4 It is never too sunny for me, Lady Ailsa,' said the minister's daughter. 4 The spring winds in Doncaster shrivelled me up.' She led the way into the manse, and up to the shabby but home-like drawing-room, in which everything was for use and comfort and very little foi ornament. Sheila thought it a very pleasant room. 222 SHEILA. Then the minister himself came up, a fine-looking man, with a benevolent face somewhat marked with the lines of care. As Lady Ailsa had said, the upbringing of a large family on small means was a problem he was daily finding it more difficult to solve. Harriet's breakdown was a serious matter more ways than one. Her post as head mistress of the High School for Girls at Doncaster was very lucrative, but the strain had proved too much. She was unfeignedly glad to see her old pupil, with whom she had lived so happily for four years. But she Avas amazed to find her so changed. She had left her a careless, happy-hearted girl, and now found her a woman, with a woman's care and forethought. 'May I come and see you again to-morrow, Miss Gordon?' Sheila asked, when she saw her aunt preparing to go, after a short stay. 4 Surely ; come every day, dear Sheila. I feel as if I had to make a new acquaintance with you. Do you remember our happy days at Dalmore ? ' Sheila flushed up quickly, but made no reply. Harriet Gordon could not but wonder why she was so sensitive about Dalmore. 'Aunt Ailsa, Mr. Gordon is not a very rich man, is he?' asked Sheila, as they drove away from the manse gate. 'Not rich at all, my dear, quite poor, and ten children. dear me, I am so sorry for them ! I see Harriet feels dread- fully having to come home, and these three boys at college are a dreadful drain upon poor Mr. Gordon's purse.' 'Aunt Ailsa, why are so many nice people poor and unhappy ? ' ' They may be poor at the manse, but they are not unhappy, Sheila far from it. I never saw a more united and affection- ate family. You must not run away with the idea that only rich people are happy. It is quite the reverse.' ' Oh, Aunt Ailsa, I know that,' said Sheila, in a low voice, and then a little silence fell upon them. 'Are you not tired having me at Murrayshaugh, auntie?' asked Sheila, after a while. ' Just listen to that lark. I am sure he will strain his dear THE AWAKENING. 223 little throat,' said Aunt Ailsa mischievously, pointing with her parasol up to the blue expanse, where a lark was trilling his sweet, noisy song with all his might. Sheila smiled. 'You are very naughty to laugh at me, Aunt Ailsa, when I am so sober. I want to talk very much in earnest to you.' ' Won't you talk very much in fun, just for a change? You are far too solemn and sober, Sheila; and I am going to be very angry with you from to- day.' * You couldn't be angry if you tried, Aunt Ailsa,' said Sheila quietly, and was silent again for a little, keeping her eyes on the ponies' tossing heads. 'Aunt Ailsa,' Sheila dropped the reins and looked quite round into her aunt's face, ' I I think it is time for me to go back to Dalmore.' ' Yes, my dear ; I have been waiting for it.' 'J I think that perhaps papa would not like me to stay away so long,' said Sheila, with a pathetic tremble in her voice. ' It is as if I did not like it, and oh, I do, Aunt Ailsa better than any place in the world ! ' ' Yes, my dear, I understand.' ' I have been thinking such a great deal, Aunt Ailsa, often till my head ached dreadfully, trying to make up my mind what to do. I have been reading in Uncle Douglas's books.' ' Don't I know it ? I saw you one day, and could have whipped you, Sheila.' ' I have been reading all about wills and everything.' 'What for? Your will was right enough, Sheila. Nothing will set it aside.' ' I know,' said Sheila, with a little sigh, ' and I can't give it up either. It would not be right. But, Aunt Ailsa, I think papa was sorry after about Fergus. Just think if he meant at the end to give him Dalmore, but could not make us under- stand. Wouldn't it be dreadful? "* ' Sheila, it is very wrong of you to say such things. If you brood over this, you may do yourself serious injury.' ' O no, I won't. When I go to Dalmore, auntie, I am 224 SHEILA. going to look everywhere to see if there is any other will. Papa said something about it.' Lady Ailsa listened in vexed silence. She saw that the girl was the slave of an idea which would cause her great trouble and anxiety if she brooded upon it. 1 You may look, dear, to satisfy yourself, but I am quite sure you will never find what you seek. Now that it is all over, would it not be much better to try and be worthy of your inheritance, and do your duty as its mistress, than to make yourself and others miserable with these ideas? Sheila, it is not right.* 'Perhaps not, Aunt Ailsa, but I can't feel right about it Dalmore ought to belong to Fergus. I will never forget that.' ' It may be his some day if you give it to him, Sheila,' said Aunt Ailsa, with a smile, but Sheila did not understand, and took the words in their literal sense. 'Perhaps he may take it some day,' she said hopefully. ' Aunt Ailsa, do you think Miss Gordon would come back to Dalmore with me? I have to learn some things yet. Then she could help them at home, and get strong herself at Dal- more.' Aunt Ailsa took the girl's grave, sweet face in her hands and kissed it tenderly. ' God bless you, my darling, for ever and ever. I gee you are to be a blessing to Dalmore,' CHAPTER XXV. HOME. Na birdie sweeter sings, In a' the warl' wide, Than the lintie 'mong the whins On our ain hill-side. SADO, OOD-BYE, then, Sheila. I shall come up some fine day soon, and see how you are getting on, 1 said Lady Ailsa. ' Harriet Gordon, see that she is kept in occupation. I leave her in your care.' ' I will look after her, Lady Ailsa,' said Harriet Gordon, looking at Sheila with all her heart in her eyes. No need to say how readily the kind offer had been accepted at the manse. Once more care was lifted from the minister's heart. The perfect rest, the fine, pure, bracing air, and the plentiful table at Dalmore would do more for his ailing daughter than even the mother's care at home. With ten mouths to fill every day, it is no easy task to provide tempting dainties, even for one. So the carriage rolled away from Murrayshaugh, and along the smooth, wide road to Dunkeld, which was looking its loveliest that sunny June day. Sheila hud not much to say while they drove; but though her tongue was silent her eyes were busy, and when they passed by the richly- wooded low grounds, and turned up Strathbraan, 226 SHEILA. Harriet Gordon saw her look eagerly from side to side, noting each familiar landmark with loving interest and pride. It was a long drive, and Harriet was a little tired before they reached Amulree. * Oh, Miss Gordon ! just look at Dalihore with the sun on it. Isn't it lovely?' Sheila cried, when they reached the top of Ballinreich Brae, and saw the whole face of Crom Creagh, with the old house lying snugly in its bosom, sheltered by dark pines, and waving, graceful birches. The sun was flashing in every window, and from the tower the flag was waving for the first time since it had been lowered at its master's death. 'That is to welcome you, Sheila. They are glad their young lady is coming home,' said Miss Gordon, with a pleased smile. Sheila's eyes were full of tears. It would be but a sorry welcome after all, returning to an empty house, which was peopled only by memories and the shadowy forms of those who ' were not.' But the few servants in charge of the place had all gathered about the door, and Cameron, wearing a stiff black silk gown and her best lace cap, came forward with a smile and a tear to bid her young mistress welcome home. Sheila looked from one to another somewhat mournfully, and replied to their greetings in a low, quiet voice. It made the bairn feel her responsibility yet more when she saw them standing so respect- fully before her her own servants ! She was very young to be mistress to anybody, and they saw what was her unuttered thought, and every heart was sore for her. * Tea is in the drawing-room, Miss Sheila,' said Mrs. Cameron. ' Let me help you, Miss Gordon. You look so white and tired.' ' She is very tired, I am afraid. Will you be able to come to tea, Miss Gordon, or will you go and lie down for a while ? ' asked Sheila kindly. ' I will just go up to my own room. I am very sorry to be so useless, dear. I hope 1 shall be better soon.' ' O yes, I am sure you will. Take her up, Cameron, and I will go to the drawing-room for her tea,' said Sheila, thinking of others' comfort before her own. She took up the tea, and sat by her governess while she drank it, and then, drawing down the blind and covering her up, she HOME. 227 bade her go to sleep, and ran downstairs. The housekeeper was waiting about the landing, anxious to see and speak with her. She was so glad to see the bairn back to her own home again. 'Do come into the drawing-room, while I am having tea,' said Sheila. ' I want to hear all about everything. Oh, have they had any news from the folk who left the Fauld? ' ' Yes, Miss Sheila ; about a week ago, Rob Macnaughton had a letter from the smith, and Ewan M'Fadyen, too, had one from his daughter Annie, who married young Stewart of Turrich. You'll remember her ? ' ' 1 did not know her, as she was a servant with the Miss Campbells at Shian ; and did they all get safe over that dreadful sea?' * All safe; and what do you think, Miss Sheila? sailing on the sea made old Mrs. Stewart quite well,' said the housekeeper, delighted to see the bairn so interested ; ' and they are all in good spirits, and not a bit sorry they left the Glen.' ' I'm glad of that. I hope they will get on splendidly,' said Sheila fervently ; ' and all the other folks are quite well ? Do you ever see Katie Menzies ? ' 1 Only on Sundays at the kirk, Miss Sheila. A bonnie, bonnie lassie Katie has grown. I hope she'll have grace to guide her. I'm whiles hearing what I dinna like ; but let that pass.' ' And Malcolm, who is so droll. How is Malcolm ? ' * Just as he was. What a size he has grown 1 six feet in his stockings, if he is an inch, Miss Sheila, I am sure. And the auld wife is as thrawn as ever.' ' Oh, I must go down and see them all, now I have come.' ' You are going to bide, then ? ' asked Mrs. Cameron anxiously. ' Yes, I think so,' said Sheila, growing a little pale. ' You will be very kind to poor Miss Gordon, Cameron, and give her all she needs ? I want her to grow very strong in Dalmore.' 'I'll do all I oan, for she's a sweet young lady, and fine company she'll be for you,' said Cameron heartily. ' Oh, Miss Sheila, it's fell proud I am that ye are come home to your own. 228 SHEILA. It's been but a dull house all the summer through without a head.' ' Am I the head, Cameron ? ' asked Sheila, with a pathetic little smile ; then, quite suddenly, showing the current of her thoughts, she added, ' Fergus is not at Shonnen, is he?' ' No, Miss Sheila ; but he will be in three weeks' time, Jessie Mackenzie was telling me yesterday. He is doing something splendid at the college.' ' He is very clever. Of course he would do splendidly/ said Sheila complacently. 'Oh, Cameron, don't you think it would have been grand if Fergus had been Laird of Dalmore? Then, how happy I could have been at Murrayshaugh ; Aunt Ailsa's little girl, and nothing more.' 'We are very well pleased with our young lady, Miss Sheila,' said Cameron. ' There's not one in all Strathbraan or Glen- quaich but what would say that.' ' Perhaps not ; but all the same he ought to have had it,' said Sheila, with a sigh ; and then she told to the faithful servant the few words Macdonald had said on that dark day he died, over which Sheila had brooded till she made herself ill. ' I want you to help me to look, Cameron,' she said ; ' if there was another will, and Dalmore should belong to Fergus, how dreadful for me to be here ! ' 'Miss Sheila,' said the housekeeper somewhat hesitatingly, ' I want to tell you something that happened two nights before the Laird died. Master Fergus had been up to see him, and after he was away the Laird bade me get him his writing things out of the library. I gave them to him, and when he rang for me, about half an hour after, he had been writing something, for the ink was wet in the pen, and he had dried something on the blotting-pad, for it was quite clean when I gave it to him. But he never said anything, and there was no sign of any papers lying about' 1 It would be the will, Cameron ! I knew there was one ! ' cried Sheila excitedly, jumping up. ' Let us go and look every- where in the library. Oh, we must find it ! We will find it, I am sure.' HOME. 229 Leaving her teacup half emptied on the table, Sheila was ofi downstairs like an arrow. The housekeeper followed her as quickly as she could, and found her with a drawer open in the Laird's secretaire. ' Look here, Miss Sheila,' said Cameron. ' I put past this blotting-pad, I don't know why. It has never been used since the Laird had it, though Mr. Colqnhoun wrote a lot here after the Laird died. Can you re;id it? ' Sheila leaned on the housekeeper's shoulder, and fixed her eyes intently on the blotting-pad. The characters were strange, cramped-looking things, not easily deciphered, but she could make out quite clearly the name of Fergus Macleod, and further on, Dalmore. 4 Cameron,' she said quite solemnly, ' this is the impress of the will; let us hunt all over the rooms. It can't be out of these few rooms, unless papa gave it to some one.' 'That he didn't, Miss Sheila, for nobody saw him agaia till Lady Ailsa came. Angus M'Benn was here upon the Thursday, but I had the Laird's orders not to let him in, and bonnie angered he was at it, and gied me ill words aboot it. But when I have my orders I can be as firm as the Bass Rock.' Sheila never answered. Her hands and eyes were busy among the straggling papers in the drawers, but, though they searched for an hour and more in every nook and cranny, nothing was found of the missing will if, indeed, it had ever existed. The child was grievously disappointed, but would not quite give up hope. She carried the precious blotting- pad up to her own room, and locked it in her wardrobe drawer. Then she went up to see whether Miss Gordon was awake. 'I want to go along to Achnafauld, Miss Gordon,' she said, seeing that she was wide awake. ' Would it be too far to walk?' 4 Well, perhaps, to-night, it would, dear. If you could wait till the morning, I would go with you.' 4 1 want to go to-night, though,' said Sheila. ' It will be light for a long time yet, and Malcolm and Katie Menzies will convoy 230 SHEILA. me home. I have never been at the Fauld, Miss Gordon, since last year, before I went to school.' Sheila's listless, brooding thoughtfulness seemed to have vanished utterly. She was alert now, anxious to be up and doing. The time for action had come. Harriet Gordon, a few minutes later, watched the tall, slight, lissom figure, walking with swift, firm, purpose-like step along the white road from the Girron Brig, and smiled a little. Unless she was very much mistaken, the people's interests would be looked into, and as they had never been looked into in any laird's time. Sheila knew their inner life, and would take a personal interest in all their affairs. The governess, who, nice most folk, disliked and distrusted Angus M'Bean, wondered how he would like the new rule. Though it was in the frail hands of a girl, it might be too firm for his taste. Sheila did not meet any one on the road but the innkeeper's herd, who, not recognising her, bade her turn his cattle about if she met them ' wast the Glen.' She smiled, and, promising to do so, walked rapidly on. It was delightful to be out in these open roads, with the wide-spreading heathery moors on either side, and the cool, fresh mountain breezes blowing about her like the elixir of life. How solemn and majestic the towering peaks of the encircling hills ! Looking back, the purple after- glow from the sunset lay exquisitely on the Girron, while Tom- nagrew was in darkest shadow. A golden shaft again touched the rugged shoulder of Craig Hulich. Light and shadow exquisitely blended or sharply contrasted gave to the landscape a beauty second in Sheila's eyes to none. She only looked once more to Craig Hulich, sharply defined against the clear amber sky ; she could not forget that in Shonnen dwelt a woman who hated her with a terrible hatred, rendered doubly awful to Sheila, because it was the mother of Fergus Macleod who bore such causeless resentment against her. Away up the Glen the beauty of the summer evening was seen in its most striking aspect of perfect peace. There was not a ripple on the breast of the loch, and the Quaich, like a thread of gold, watered the low green banks, where the lambs were frisking about their mothers, and as if rejoicing in the sweetness of a perfect sumniei HOME. 231 day. The trees were green and lovely about Shian ; but Sheila could not look often there. Some day she would visit that quiet resting-place, but not yet. She did not meet the cattle on the road, but, seeing them on the slope of the brae leading over to Corrymuckloch, she took the trouble to go up and turn them about on their homeward way. The exertion heated her, and there was a lovely flush on her face when she reached the Fauld and entered Janet Menzies' cottage. ' Wha's that ? ' asked the old woman querulously ; then she added a sharp sentence in Gaelic, which Sheila, of course, did not understand. ' Katie, ye jaud ! come here ; there's a strange wummin at the door.' 'It's only me, Janet,' said Sheila, coming forward. 'Don't you know ine? I missed you from your chair. Have you been long in bed ? ' ' Ay, ower lang. So it's you, Miss Sheila ? ' said Janet, un- graciously enough still. 'Katie, whaur are ye? Ill befa' her ! she's never in. But I daursay she'll be helpin' some o' them wi* their kye. A'thing but her ain duty. Sit down. Are ye hame to Dalmore ?' ' Yes ; I only came to-day.' 'Jist aboot time, then, or ye needna ha' come ava. Leddy Cameron and her set wad sune eat ye oot o' hoose an' hame,' said Janet grimly. * Whaur hae ye been a' this while?' 'At Murray shaugh. Oh, here's Katie. How are you, Katie? 1 'Miss Sheila I' Katie blushed with pleasure, and somewhat shyly took the proffered hand. Two fair young creatures both were, as they stood there, each contrasting well with the other. Katie, in her fresh calico and spotless kerchief, her bonnie face bronzed with the sun, was as fair in her own way as the dainty young Lady of Dalmore. How difterent you look, Miss Sheila t I think I shouldna hae kent ye,' said Katie, knowing by the sweet, easy smile that there was no inner change. ' Tou are different, too, Katie. Isn't she bonnie, Janet ? ' 2 3 2 SHEILA. ' Bonnie ! I dinna see't. She's fair eneuch without ye tellin' her ony mnir. The lads are beginnin' to rin aboot; a perfect heartbreak, besides an end to wark.' ' Oh, Aunt Janet ! ' said Katie, growing redder still. ' Never mind her, Miss Sheila. You must see Malcolm. I think he is over at the stocking-weaver's.' 'Well, I'm going there, so never mind telling him, Katie. Is your aunt always in her bed now ? ' ' Oo ay, aye abed I ' grumbled the old woman. * I'd rather be deid, and dune wi't. I dinna ken what pleasure it can gie the Almichty to keep me lyin', sair and weary, here.' ' Wheesht, auntie 1 ' said Katie reprovingly ; but Sheila could not help laughing at the odd speech. ' So word has come home from America, and they are to get on nicely?' she said, to change the subject. ' So they say, so they say just lees, I tell them. Wha's t( ken what's true and what's lees, and sae muckle water atween them?' said Jenny, in her usual cantankerous spirit. 'Ay, Angus M'Bean's gettin* the auld place cleared oot in braw style. He's Laird o' Palmore noo, ye ken.' 'Aunt Janet, dinna be impudent,' said Katie, in a vexed tone. ' She's waur than she used to be, Miss Sheila, but nobody minds her.' 'You dinna, ony way, ye jaud! though I brocht ye up. Folks' ain bairns are bad, they say, though I never had ony, but ither folks' are a hantle waur. Will ye tak' my advice, Miss Sheila? If ye are the Leddy o' Dalmore, as they say, set that ill carle at Auchloy about his business. 1 ken him wha better? He's feart for my crawin', an' thocht he'd get me shippet awa' to Canady; but Angus M'Bean an' me hae a wee bit account to settle yet.' CHAPTER XXVL HER OWN FOLK. Thou art no lingerer in a monarch's hall ; A joy thou art, and a wealth to all ! A bearer of hope unto land and sea. RE you gaun to bide at the big boose noo, Miss Sheila ? ' Katie asked, following Sheila to the door when she went away. 'Yes, I think so. I have been a long time away, Katie. How is Malcolm? Is he quite strong now?' 'Only whiles,' answered Katie, with a shadow on her fair face. ' He gets himsel' into sic passions aboot naething, and he's as weak as water efter't, Miss Sheila. There's no' much to be made off the land, but it's better than naething. Ye'll no' let Mr. M'Bean put auntie oot o* the hoose, an' tak' the croft frae her at Martinmas ? ' ' Katie Menzies 1 how could you think of such a dreadful thing ? ' asked Sheila, in a shocked, sorrowful voice. ' Weel, Mr. M 'Bean's aye tellin' Malky this'll be his last hairst,' said Katie, with tears in her eyes. 'You snould see Malky after Mr. M'Bean's been speakin' till him. His een glower like fire, an' he fair shakes wi' rage. I'm terrified whiles for fear they fa' oot' 234 SHEILA. 1 Til see Malcolm, Katie ; and don't you vex yourself about the house or the croft. Too many have left the Glen already. There will be no more if I can help it,' said Sheila, with the grave decision of a woman. The assurance comforted Katie, and she had a smile again as she said good-bye. Sheila crossed through the clachan, not caring to look at all at the ' smiddy,' where Donald and Mary had been wont to welcome her so warmly, and went straight to Rob Macnaughton's door. It was shut as usual, but, after giving a light tap, she went in. It was never broad daylight in these little, low, thatched cottages, and soon after sundown they had to light their lamps. But Rob and Malcolm Menzies were sitting in the red glow of the peat fire, and the little kitchen was full of curious shadows, made by the blending of daylight and firelight. It was a few seconds before Sheila's eye got so accustomed to the gloom that she could discern the two figures sitting by the hearth. I It's only me, Rob,' she said, with a little laugh. * Malcolm, how are you? I can hardly see you.' 'Bless the bairn I* said the stocking-weaver, springing up. ' Ye came in that canny a moose wadna hear ye. Malcolm and me's at the Gaelic. He's ta'en the notion to learn it, an' it keeps him oot o' mischief.' Malcolm rose, blushing painfully, and shuffled awkwardly back from the fireside, quite ignoring the kind hand Sheila stretched out to him in greeting. A big, uncouth-looking fellow was Malcolm still, a man in height, but loose and ill - hung, his bony cheeks gaunt and hollow, his eyes far sunken in his head, and his matted brown hair hanging in tangles about his face, quite hiding the high forehead, which, being always thus covered, was as white as snow, and some- times, when he would push the hair aside, it showed in curious contrast against the swarthy, sunburnt hue of the lower part of his face. I 1 have been in seeing your aunt and Katie, and I came over to see you, Malcolm,' said Sheila. 'And how is he getting on with the Gaelic, Rob? How fond he is of learning new things 1 ' HER OWN FOLK. 235 *He's getting on faster than I can teach him,' said Rob, busying himself with the lamp on the table. ' But, faith, he asks for explanations I canna gie him. I'm no' a grammarian, ye ken ; it's the hamert Gaelic I teach.' ' Sit down, Malcolm ; don't go away because I have come in, ; said Sheila kindly ; but Malcolm, with a toss of his long hair, suddenly clutched his shanter, and disappeared like a shot out of the door. ' He's a queer ane, Miss Sheila,' said Eob, with his dry laugh. ' Ye never ken whaur ye hae him. But I'm jist as weel pleased he's gane. Sit doon, sit doon. So ye've come back, my bairnie, to your ain ? ' The harsh voice of the stocking-weaver became soft and low as he uttered the last sentence, and his rugged eyes looked with a peculiar tenderness at the sweet, refined face of the young creature sitting by his hearth. ' Yes, Rob,' said Sheila, with a catch in her voice ; ' I came back to-day.' 'An' the auld hoose seemed empty, and the bit heart cried out for them that's awa? Ay, ay,' said Rob, as he stirred up the peats on the hearth to make a cheery glow, 'it was a bairn that gaed awa, an' I see it's a woman that has come back. But she'll be guided and blessed, for the blessin' o' the Lord is upon her.' Sheila sat very still; feeling, indeed, as if some precious benison was falling on her head. ' It is empty and sad, Rob,' she said at length ; ' and oh, how different it is here at the Fauld, too ! There's only you and the Menzies, where there used to be so many.' ' Ay, an' there'll be fewer. He's to put Malcolm oot, they say, at the back-end; but afore that there'll maybe be an ill deed dune in the Glen that will bring a curse upon it.' ' He will not put Malcolm out, Rob. I have come home,' said Sheila ; and her sweet mouth became proud and determined, and her soft eyes flashed with a brave resolve. The stocking-weaver gave his knee a great slap with his horny hand, and chuckled merrily. 36 SHEILA. ' Ay, ay, the bairn is a woman, an' he's to get his match. Sic fun I ' Sheila laughed a little, too. That curious chuckle of Rob's was very contagious. ' Rob, will yon take another pupil ? / want to learn Gaelic too,' she said presently. ' You learn frae me ! Ye heard what I said, it's hamert Gaelic I teach ; I hinna grammar.' 'Don't tell me that, Rob, when you can write such perfect little poems. I heard a great professor from Edinburgh at Murrayshaugh, one day, saying they were among the classic literature of Scotland, and I felt dreadful because I had never read them,' said Sheila quickly. ' I want you to teach me your own Gaelic, because I want to be able to read your poems, and to speak to the old people in the Glen in their own tongue.' 'Bless the bairn !' said Rob, under his breath, and stooped over the peats again to hide the moisture in his eye. Those outside who only knew the rough side of the stocking-weaver would not have known him in such a mood as this, but Sheil? had never seen him in any other. 'I'm going to come about the Fauld a great deal, Rob,' she said, rising presently to go. 'I want to get to know everybody from Findowie up to Garrows. How long do you suppose it will take me to make acquaintance with them all?' ' I dinna ken. There's some o' them hardly worth the trouble, but ye'll find oot the ill wi' the guid. I see ye are beginnin' weel, my bairn, an' the new Leddy of Dalmore is to be such as was never seen.' ' Hush, Rob ! ' said Sheila, and her tears sprang again. Rob sat long after she had left him, pondering the thing in his mind, with a dreamy expression on his face which betokened the deepest thought. The new Lady of Dalmore was not to let the grass grow under her feet. Immediately after breakfast next morning the carriage was ordered, and great was the amazement of the coachman when he received his order to drive to the office of HER OWN FOLK. 237 Mr. Colquhoun, the lawyer in Perth. Miss Gordon was so far recovered that she was able to accompany her charge, but she was quite ignorant of the object of the journey. She thought to herself, however, that Lady Ailsa might have spared the injunctions to keep Sheila in occupation. There seemed to be a danger rather of her attempting too much. * I think you should get down at the Salutation, Miss Gordon, and order our lunch,' said Sheila, when they reached Perth. ' I will not be long at Mr. Colquhoun's.' The governess assented, and Sheila went alone to the lawyer's office. Needless to say, he was amazed to see her, but his greeting was most kind. The scene at Dalmore, through which his young client had carried herself so nobly, was still fresh in his memory. 'Yes, I am staying at Dalmore, Mr. Colquhoun,' she said, in answer to his first question, ' and I have come to ask you some questions. There are a great many things I want to know.' As she spoke, she began to unfasten the string from a large flat parcel wrapped in brown paper. It was the blotting-pad the Laird had used the last time he had a pen in his hand. Mr. Colquhoun was perfectly amazed, but in a few words Sheila explained the whole matter to him. Her anxiety and distress even were so genuine, that he treated her communica- tion with a corresponding gravity, though it amused him very much. ' My dear Miss Murray Macdonald,' he said, looking straight into the earnest face, 'I entreat you not to trouble yourself about this. I assure you Mr. Macdonald's mind was quite made up. His decision about Dalmore was unalterable. Both Lady Murray and I put Mr. Fergus Macleod's claim before him, but it was you he wished to heir Dalmore. The will carrying that wish into effect was only drawn up three dnys before his death. It was impossible at least, most improbable that he should change his mind. And supposing he had, would he not have given the new will, when he made it, into safe keeping, or put it where it would be found?' ' Well, perhaps,' said Sheila, but her tone was very doubtful. 238 SHEILA. ' My dear young lady, I assure you it would vex and grieve your father if he knew of the needless anxiety you are giving yourself,' said the lawyer gravely and kindly. 'And why be so downcast about Mr. Fergus Macleod? His uncle did not forget him, and he is a clever young fellow, with life all before him. He may make a far better use of his talents because he has his own way to carve. This very thing which is vexing you may be the making of him.' Sheila's face brightened. This was a side of the question which had never occurred to her before. ' So you must try and enjoy your inheritance. I am sur